C.J. Cherryh
Chanur's Venture
Chapter One
The encounter of old friends was common enough on Meetpoint Station, where half
a dozen species came to trade; and one such old friend came walking Pyanfar
Chanur's way when she had no more than put The Pride in dock. She was hani,
Pyanfar Chanur, maned and bearded in curling red-gold, sleek of pelt. Her left
ear bore the gold rings of successful voyages along its rim, and the bottommost
ring had a monstrous gaudy teardrop pearl. Her red blousing breeches were silk,
with the faintest striping of orange; and wrapped about the waist was a belt
whose dangling ties were finished in precious stones and gold and bronze. She
was not quiet, this Pynafar. She exuded wealth and dignity, and drew eyes
wherever she went.
And rounding a collection of canisters awaiting dockside pickup, she spied a
dark-furred, all but naked shape: mahendo'sat -- ordinary encounter anywhere on
Meetpoint. But this one flung wide his arms. His eyes lit up, his broad mahen
face broke into a charming grin that showed blunt primate fangs all capped in
gold.
"Pyanfar!" he cried.
"You?" Pyanfar stopped dead in her tracks. "You!" She slapped aside the offered
embrace and stalked past at a good clip, to make the mahendo'sat exert himself.
"Ha, hani captain," the mahe called after her. "You want deal?"
She turned about again, planted hands on hips and let the mahe overtake her
against all better judgment. A heavy hand descended on her shoulder and the mahe
resumed his gilt-edged grin.
"Long time," Goldtooth said.
"Gods rot you, don't grin at me. You want a smile from me, you mahen bastard?
How'd you get in port?"
"Just docked. Find my good friend here. Give surprise, a?" He laughed, slapped
her on the back, seized her about the shoulders in one lank, coarse-pelted arm
and propelled her toward the ship berths. "Got present, hani."
"Present!" Pyanfar dug claws into the deck-plates, resisting this camaraderie,
aware of probable witnesses, of a whole row of grinning mahendo'sat lazing in
front of a canister-surrounded loading area. A ship access gaped ahead.
Mahijiru, doubtless. "You owe me, mahe, owe me for tools and two good welders,
for fake repairs, for doublecross--"
"Good friend, Pyanfar Chanur." A powerful arm shoved her ramp ward through the
gathered mahendo'sat, and she spun about and cast an indignant look back before
Goldtooth wrapped his arm into a tighter grip and hastened her up the ramp.
"Good friend. Remember I save your neck, a?"
"Present," she muttered, stalking along the accessway. "Present." But she went,
and stopped inside the lock, while some of the mahendo'sat who had trooped after
them poured past into the interior corridors. Goldtooth turned sober for the
moment, and she liked that less. Her ears were flat. "What kind present, huh?"
The mahe winked, decidedly a wink, this trader who was no trader, who played
what he was not, with Mahijiru which was not the slow-moving freighter it looked
to be. "Good see you one piece, hani."
"Huh." Her mouth pursed in better humor, in deliberate good humor. She slapped
the mahe on the arm, claws not quite pulled. "Same good see you, Ana
Ismehanan-min. You still play merchant?"
"We trade sometime, keep us same honest."
"Present, a?"
The mahe looked to his left where the towering black wall of mahe crew parted.
Pyanfar looked -- and her ears went up and her mouth fell open at the gangling
stsho-cloaked apparition in the doorway to Mahijiru's inmost corridors. A mostly
hairless face with mane and beard like spun daylight; a face like nothing in
civilized space.
"O gods," she said, and whirled about, heading for the airlock, but the
mahendo'sat had it packed.
"Pyanfar," the human said.
She turned, ears flat. "Tully," she said in despair, and lost the rest of her
dignity as the human hastened to fling his arms about her. His clothes reeked of
mahen incense.
"Pyanfar," Tully said, and straightened up and towered over her, grinning like a
mahe and trying to stop it, for he knew better. "Py-an-far." In evident delight.
That was the limit of his conversation. That mouth was never made for hani
speech. Goldtooth set his hand possessively on Tully's shoulder and squeezed.
"Fine present, a, Pyanfar?"
"Where'd you find him?"
The mahen captain shrugged. "Come all the way mahen trader name Ijir, long time
mahen ship, all time want you, Pyanfar Chanur, crazy mad human. Come find you,
come find you, all he know."
She looked up at Tully, who stood there with something brimming over in him, who
had no possible business where he was, in mahendo'sat transport, light-years
from human territory, in a zone where humankind was banned.
"No," she said to Goldtooth. "No. Absolutely not. He's your problem."
"He want find you," Goldtooth said. "Friend. Where your sentiment?"
"Gods rot you -- gods rot you, Goldtooth. Why? For what? What's he want?"
"Want talk you. Your friend, hani, good friend, a?"
"Friend. You earless, mangy bastard. I just got my papers clear -- You know what
it cost?"
"Trade." Goldtooth came close and put his arm conspiratorially about her
shoulders. She stood like rock, laid back her ears and grinned into his face in
chill reception. "Trade, hani. You want make deal?"
"You want to lose that arm?"
Primate fangs gleamed gold. "Rich, hani. Rich -- and powerful. You want this
human trade? Got. --Look this face--"
"Have I got a choice?"
A wider grin. "Loyal friend. Want you do a thing for me. Want you make this
human happy, a? Want you take him to Personage. Want you take him to the han.
Make all round happy. Got trade, hani. Profits."
"Sure, profits." She shoved back at arm's length and stared up at that earnest
mahen face. "Profits like last time, like bills up to the overhead, like hani
barred six months from Meetpoint and The Pride out a gods-rotted year--"
"Like stsho got lot gratitude hani save their hides, a?"
"Same as the mahendo'sat. Same as the mahe who double-crossed me--"
Black palms lifted. "Not my fault, not my fault. Stsho close Meetpoint, what I
do?"
"Snatch the trade, what else? What route you been running?"
"You take him, a?"
"You brought him here. Friend. It's all yours. So's the lawsuit. You explain it
to the stsho!"
"Got trade, Pyanfar-"
"And get embargoed? Gods rot, you earless lunatic! You try to do for the rest of
my business? The stsho--"
"Pyanfar." He took her by both shoulders. "Pyanfar. I tell you, one paper this
human got, he read for you this paper. They send him, this humanity. They got
trade. Big business, maybe much big thing the Compact ever see. You got share."
She drew a deep, long, mahe-flavored breath. "Favors, Goldtooth?"
"A," he laughed, and hugged her shoulder with bone-crushing force. "Promise,
hani. I make promise, keep. Got business. Got go. You take this human. Don't I
make promise you get share human trade? I keep. This human come to me, I find my
old friend Pyanfar for him. You want share, you take. But you got do this
thing."
"Now we get to it. Why?"
"Got business. Got go fix."
"Got business -- How'd you get here? How'd you just happen to pull in on my
tail?"
"Know you come, old friend. I lie off and wait."
"How'd you know? I didn't, till the papers cleared at Kura."
"Got contacts. Know you got that stsho business clear. So you come here soon."
"Gods rot your hide, mahe. That's a lie."
Dark eyes glittered, shifted. "Say then I follow you from Urtur."
"With him? Out of mahen space? No way, egg-sucker. How'd you arrange it?"
The hand dropped from her shoulder. "You sharp dealer, hani."
"What say instead the stsho kept Mahijiru off Meetpoint docking lists. Say you
were here all along, blocked off the lists. Waiting for me."
"You got lot suspicion."
"I got gods-rotted plenty suspicion, you earless foundling bastard. Give me the
truth."
"Might say."
"Might say. Might say -- The stsho know he's here?"
"Know."
"Then who are you hiding from?" And on a second thought: "O gods!"
"Got kif trouble."
"Gods rot you, then you take him! You take this whole business and--"
"Good, brave friend. Kif spies already here. Han spies too. Got han deputy ship
in port. Know we meet. After this they got plenty curiosity. So you got risk
already, hani. Don't want profit too? Besides, you hurt his feeling. Hurt mine."
She stood still, a long, long time. Her claws flexed out. She drew them in, with
a long slow breath. "Gods rot your--"
"Give you fair deal, Pyanfar. Number one fine deal. Know you got troubles. You
got han trouble. You promise human trade, you don't got. Lose face. You got mate
troubles--"
"Shut up."
"I keep promise, Pyanfar. You want share profit, you got share risk."
"Share suicide. What you think I am?"
"You get human trade, your enemies can't touch you, a, hani captain? The han --
don't like you lose face. You get rich, keep your brother life, keep your mate.
Keep The Pride."
A narrow darkness closed in on her sight, hunter-vision set on Goldtooth. It was
difficult to hear, so tight her ears were folded. She deliberately raised them,
looked about her, at Tully's distressed face.
"I take him," she said to Goldtooth, a small, strangled breath. "If--"
"If?"
"--if we get letter of credit at mahe facilities. Good anywhere. Unlimited."
"God! You think I Personage?"
"I think you next best thing, you rag-eared conniving bastard! I think you got
that power, I think you got any gods-rotted credit you want, like what you
pulled on me at Kirdu, like--"
"You dream." Goldtooth laid a blunt-clawed hand on his breast. "I captain. Got
no credit like that."
"Good-bye." She faced about, bared teeth at the crowd blocking her retreat. "You
going to move this lot? Or do I move them for you?"
"I write," he said.
She faced him with ears flat. Held out her hand.
He held out his to one of the mahe at his side. "Tablet," he said, and that one
vanished hurriedly into the inner corridor with a spatter of bare mahen feet and
non-retracting claws.
"Better," said Pyanfar.
Goldtooth scowled, took the tablet the breathless mahe brought back to him,
removed its stylus and wrote. He withdrew a Signature from the belt that crossed
his chest and inserted it; the tablet spat out its seal-stamped document. He
held it.
"I'll translate that," Pyanfar said, "first thing."
"You one bastard, Pyanfar." Goldtooth's grin looked astonishingly hani in his
dark mahen face. "One sure bastard. No--" He drew it back as she held out her
hand; he turned and handed it instead to Tully, who looked at them both
confusedly. "Let him hold. He bring. With other documents."
"If that paper doesn't say what it had better say--"
"You do what? Toss good friend Tully out airlock? You no do."
"Oh, no. No such thing. I pay debts where they're due, old friend."
Goldtooth's grin spread. He thrust the tablet into a crewman's hands and clapped
her on the arm. "You thank me someday."
"You can bet I will. Everything I owe. I find a way. How you going to get him to
The Pride? Tell me that! You walk him up to my lock, I fix your ears."
"Got special canister." Goldtooth held out his hand. "Customs papers," he said,
and a crewman held out another tablet and stylus. "You take cargo, a? Shishu
fruit. Dried fish. Got four cans. One all rigged, number one good lifesupport.
Pass him that way."
She shook her head to clear it, stared at him afresh. "I'm going mad. That
trick's got white hairs. Why don't you just roll him up in a carpet, for the
gods' sake, and dump him on my deck? Deliver him in a basket, why don't you?
Good gods, what am I doing here?"
"Still good trick. You want this honest citizen, you pay duty, ha?"
She drew her ears down tight, snatched the tablet and furiously appended her own
signature, handwritten. She shoved it back at the mahe crewman who dared no
expression at her at all.
"Fish," she said in disgust.
"Cheapest duty. What you want, pay more? I tell you, got thing fixed."
"I'll bet you do."
"Customs ask no question. Number one fixed."
"I've got questions. I've got plenty of questions. You set me up, you
egg-sucking bastard. So I take this deal. But by-the-gods you tell me everything
you know. What kif trouble? Where are they working? Are they on your tail right
now?"
"Always got kif at Meetpoint."
"Then why come here, for the gods' sakes? What are you doing here? The kif know
what you've got?"
Goldtooth shrugged. "Maybe."
"From how long? How long you been at this?"
A second shrug. "Packet. In packet got paper tell you. Tully bring in canister.
You take, you read all. You run fast. Go Maing Tol, go Personage. Get plenty
help from there."
"They on your tail?"
A third shrug.
"Goldtooth, you bastard, how tight?"
"Got trouble," Goldtooth said.
She weighed that. Mahijiru in trouble. A mahen hunter-ship with more kif
troubles than it could handle. "So you got. Where you go now?"
"Best thing you don't ask."
"Human space?"
"Maybe deep in stsho territory. Read packet. Read packet. Friend."
"Rot you."
"Rot you too," Goldtooth said soberly. His ears stayed up. There were fine
wrinkles round his dark eyes. "God save us. Need you, Pyanfar. Need bad."
"Huh." She flicked her ears up with a light chiming of their rings. "I'm not a
gods-blessed warship, mahe."
"Know that."
"Sure. Sure." She walked off a pace to get clear breath, looked at Tully, who
understood -- perhaps a little. Always more than he spoke.
Tully would not lie to her. That much she believed. His silence, his level,
unflinching stare now, that vouched for his own honesty in this. "When bring to
you?" Goldtooth asked. She turned back to him. "Got an appointment in station
office. Got to make that. Got to advise my crew. Got to tell them -- You give me
lot of problems, hear? And you be careful." She extruded a claw and poked
Goldtooth hard in the chest, so she saw him wince. "You be careful this package.
You be gods-rotted careful, hear?" She meant two things.
"Hear," Goldtooth said, full soberly. He heard both things. She knew.
"Got three days this port," she said. "Got stall three days with gods-rotted kif
sniffing round. I pull The Pride out sooner, big trouble. Lot of attention. When
you go?"
"Deliver package, wait awhile, then go. Got no cargo but fake cans I give to
you."
"So." She turned away, met Tully's eyes, patted him very gently on his arm,
recalling his fragile skin. "Safe, understand. You do what they say. No fear.
These mahendo'sat bring you to me. Understand?"
"Yes," Tully said, and looked at her in that way he had, his pale stare
desperately intense.
Her ears twitched, her nostrils widened with the scent of something more than
Meetpoint-sized amiss, more than a corrupt stsho and closed routes and xenophobe
stsho councils back in Llyene, atwitter over humanity that wanted through stsho
space. Mahen connivances. Kif greed. She looked back at Goldtooth. "Presents.
One fine present. Ha!"
Goldtooth lifted his head, his brown eyes half-lidded. "Tell you this, old
friend. Kif don't forget. They hunt me. Soon hunt you. Not revenge. Kif-thought.
Skikkik. Hunt me, hunt you. Tully come here -- Got one fine trouble this time.
This business Tully bring us only -- hurry things. Make timetable ours, not
kif's."
"Huh," she said. "So I take this gift. I don't like things coming at my back.
You watch yourself. You run far, mahe. You do good. Wish you luck."
"You got," Goldtooth said. "Wish you luck, hani."
She flicked her ears, indecisive, turned and stalked out the airlock through the
parting crowd of tall mahendo'sat.
Luck.
Luck indeed.
Her mind was not in it as she walked on down the dock. It kept sorting troubles
past and troubles future -- dangerous, she thought, catching a whiff of some
scent not mahendo'sat nor stsho, but something she could not, in this large,
cold space . . . identify.
Cargo, maybe. Maybe something else. It set her nose to twitching and set an itch
between her shoulderblades.
She did not look about, here on Meetpoint's docks, padding along the cold
deckplates, beside the gapings of ship accesses, out of which wafted more
friendly scents. There were other hani ships at Meetpoint. She had read the list
before she had put The Pride into dock: Marrar's Goiden Sun; Ayhar's Prosperity;
oh, yes, and Ehrran's Vigilance. That ship. That one, that Goldtooth had
mentioned, but not by name . . . that han's eyes, which were doubtless on other
business at the moment, but which were capable of catching small furtive moves
-- like a Chanur captain paying calls on mahen ships.
There were a dozen other mahen vessels in port: Tigimiransi, Catimin-shai,
Hamarandar were some she had known for years. And familiar stsho names, like
Assustsi, E Mnestsist, Heshtmit and Tstaarsem Nai. Round the wheel of Meetpoint,
beyond the great lock that separated oxy- from methane-breathers, ships went by
stranger titles: tc'a and knnn and chi names, if knnn had names at all. Tho'o'oo
and T'T'Tmmmi were tc'a/chi ships she had seen on docking lists before.
And kif. Of course there were kif. She had made a particular point to know those
names before she put The Pride in dock . .. names like Kekt and Harukk,
Tikkukkar, Pakakkt, Maktikkh, Nankktsikkt, Ikhoikttr. Kif names, she memorized
wherever she found them, a matter of policy -- to recall their routes, their
dockings, where they went and trading what.
The kif watched her routes with as much interest this last year. She was very
sure of that.
She did not loiter on the docks, but she made no particular haste which might
attract attention on its own. She stared at this and that with normal curiosity,
and at the same general pace she strolled up to the nearest com booth along the
row of dockside offices, keyed up Chanur credit and punched in the code for the
station comlink to The Pride's bridge. She waited. The com whistled and clicked
through nine cycles unanswered.
There was a kif on the docks. She spied the tall, black-robed form standing over
shipside in conversation with a stsho, whose pale arms waved emphatically. She
stood with her back to the plastic wall and watched this exchange past the veil
of other traffic, the passing of service vehicles, of pedestrians, mostly stsho,
pale-robed and elegant; here and there mahen-do'sat, dark and sleek. Something
winged whipped past, small and upward bound for the heights of the tall, cold
dock.
Gods only knew what that was.
Click. "Pride of Chanur," the voice finally answered. "Deck officer speaking."
"Haral, gods rot you, how long does it take?"
"Captain?"
"Who's out?"
"Outside?"
"I want that cargo inventoried. Hear? I want all of you on it, right now. No
liberties. If anyone's out, get her back. Right now."
"Aye," the voice came back, diffident. "Aye, Captain." There was question in the
voice.
"Just do it!"
"Aye. But -- Captain?"
"What?"
"Na Khym's out."
"Gods and thunders!" Her heart fell through her feet. "Where'd he go?"
"Don't know. To the free market, I think -- There some kind of trouble?"
"I'm coming back. Get him, Haral. I want him found."
"Aye, Captain."
She slammed the receiver down and headed back toward the ship in haste.
Khym, for the gods' sake. Her mate, gone strolling out in fullest confidence
that papers in order meant safety ... on a stsho trading station, where weapons
were banned, as he had gone out of ship at Urtur and Hoas among mahendo'sat; as
he had gone wandering wherever he liked through the last two markets -- male,
and duty-less and bored. Gods. O gods.
She remembered the kif then, looked back, one injudicious glance over her
shoulder, breaking the rest of her precautions.
The kif was still there, looking her way beyond the gesticulating stsho, looking
black and grim and interested.
She flung around again and moved as fast as a walk could carry her, past
Mahijiru behind its darkened (malfunctioning?) registry board, past one berth
and the other in the chill, stsho-made air.
She was panting in earnest when she came within sight of The Pride's berth.
Everything was stopped there. The machinery that ought to be offloading stood
still with cans still on the ramp. Haral was outside waiting for her, red-gold
figure in blue breeches; and spying her, came her way with scurrying haste.
"Captain--" Haral skidded up and braked, claws raking on the plates. "We're
looking."
"Kif are out," Pyanfar said. That was enough. Haral's ears went flat and her
eyes went wide. "With Ehrran clan in port. I want him back, Haral. Where'd he
talk about going? Doing what?"
"Didn't talk, Captain. We were all busy. He was there by us at the ramp. When we
looked round -- gone."
"Gods rot him!"
"Can't have gotten far."
"Sure he can't." She took the pocket com Haral offered her and clipped it to her
belt to match what Haral had. "Who's on bridge?"
"No one. I stayed. Alone."
"Hilfy's out there."
"First."
"Lock up. Come with me."
"Aye!" Haral snapped, spun on her heel and ran.
Pyanfar strode on.
Market, she reckoned. Meetpoint's famed Free Market was far and away the
likeliest place to look. Baubles and exotics. Things to see.
He might have tried the restaurants before the market.
Or the bars of the Rows.
Gods rot him. Gods rot her soft-headedness in ever taking him aboard. On Anuurn
they called her mad. At times like this she believed it, all the way.
She was breathing in great side-aching gasps when Haral came pelting back to
fall in at her side.
"He's not here," Hilfy said -- youngest of The Pride: her left ear one-ringed,
her beard only beginning, her breeches the tough blue cloth of hani crew, though
she was Ker Hilfy, Chanur's someday heir. She met Tirun Araun between two aisles
of the dock bazaar, among the stacks of cloth, foodstuffs, the fluttering of
stsho merchants. Fluting cries of exotic nonsapients legal here for trade, the
shouts of traders and passersby, music from the bars of the Rows alongside the
market-echoed off the lofty overhead in one commingled roar. Smells abounded,
drowning other scents. Color rioted. "I've been down every aisle, Tirun--"
"Try the Rows," said Tirun, older spacer. Her beard was full; her mane hung wild
about her shoulders. Her left ear flicked, clashing half a dozen rings. "Come
on. I take evens, you take odds. Hit every bar on the Rows. He might have, gods
only know."
Hilfy gulped air and went, not questioning the orders as Haral herself had not
questioned what had happened, except that something had gone wrong. Very wrong.
That had been a coded call to get off the docks. At once. Her ears kept lying
back on their own; she pricked them up with spasmodic efforts, seeking a hani
voice through the din, from out of the row of spacer bars that lined the
marketplace.
No sign of any hani in the first bar on the row. It was all mahendo'sat inside,
honking music and the raucous screech and stamp of drunken spacers.
She crossed Tirun's path on the walk on the way out and they split again into
the third and fourth bar.
Stsho, this den. But she spotted the red-gold of hani backs clustered about a
bowl-table, dived through and slid to her knees on the rim. A senior hani spacer
turned round and eyed her; other eyes turned her way, all round the table. She
bobbed a hasty bow with hands gripping the rim.
"Hilfy Chanur par Faha, gods look on you -- you seen a hani male?"
Ears laid back and pricked in non-sobriety all round the table, six pairs of
ears heavy with rings. "Gods -- what you been drinking, kid?"
"Sorry." That was a mistake. She scrambled to her feet and started away; but the
spacer swayed erect, waved wildly for balance as she clawed her unsteady way up
the plastic bowlseat to catch her arm. "Hani male, hey? Need help, Chanur? Where
you see this vision, hey?"
There were derisive laughs, curses -- someone was trodden on. The rest of the
hani came up on the seat and scrambled out of the pit. Hilfy tore loose and
fled. "Hey," she heard at her back, hani-cough, a drunken roar.
"Pay!" A shrill stsho warble from another side. "Pay, hani bastard--"
"Charge it to Ayhar's Prosperity!"
"O gods!" Hilfy dived for the exit, just as a pair of kifish patrons loomed in
the doorway. Black musty robes brushed her with a smell that sent the wind up
her back. She did not look back or pause as she dived past them both. "Hard
rabble." she heard hissed behind her, the noise of drunken encounter mingled
with kifish voices.
She darted through the outer doors into the light of the market, blinked,
hesitating on one foot, hearing above the market noise the sound of hani in full
chase behind her -- no sight of Tirun. She leaned into a run and plunged into
the next odd-numbered bar -- stsho again, not a sight of hani. She pelted back
out the doors, through the incoming mass of Ayhar clan, who began a turnabout in
that doorway in merry disorder.
Still no Tirun. She dived into the next odd-number, another stsho den, saw a
tall red shape, and heard the voices, a deeper hani voice than this port had
ever heard, the chitter of stsho curses, the snarl of mahendo'sat.
"Na Khym," she cried in profoundest relief. "Na Khym!" She eeled her way through
the towering crowd at the bar and grabbed him by the arm. "Uncle -- thank the
gods. Pyanfar wants you. Now. Right now, na Khym."
"Hilfy?" he said, far from focused. He swayed there, a head taller than she,
twice her breadth of shoulder, his broad, scarred nose wrinkled in confusion.
"Trying to explain to these fellows--"
"Uncle, for the gods' sakes-"
"He is," a hani voice cried from the door. "By the gods -- what's he doing
here?"
Khym flinched, faced about with his back to the bar, starting with misgiving at
the drunken Ayhar spacers.
"Hey!" --A second hani voice, from among the Ayhar. "Chanur! You crazy, Chanur?
What are you up to, huh, bringing him out here? You got no regard for him?"
"Come on," Hilfy pleaded. "Na Khym--" She tugged at a massive arm, felt the
tension in it. "For gods' sake, na Khym -- we've got an emergency."
Maybe that got through. Khym shivered, one sharp tremor, like an earthquake
through solid stone.
"Get, get, get!" a stsho shrilled in pidgin. "Get out he my bar!"
Hilfy pulled with all her might. Khym yielded and kept walking, through the hani
crowd that drew aside wide-eyed and muttering, past the black wall of curious
mahendo'sat and the glitter of their gold.
Another black wall formed athwart the brighter, outside light. Billowing robes
blocked the path to the door, two tall, ungainly shapes.
"Chanur," said a kif, a dry clicking voice. "Chanur brings its males out. It
needs help."
Hilfy stopped. Khym had, with a rumbling in his throat. "Don't," Hilfy said,
"don't do it -- Khym, for gods' sakes, just let's get out of here. We don't want
a fight."
"Run," the kif hissed. "Run, Chanur. You run from kif before."
"Come on." Hilfy wrapped her arm tightly about Khym's elbow. She guided him
through the crowd toward the doorway, past the first brush of robes, trying to
look noncombatant, trying to watch the whereabouts of dark kifish hands beneath
the dusky cloth.
"Hilfy," said Khym.
She looked up. The whole doorway had filled with kif.
"It's got a knife!" A hani voice. "Look out, kid--"
Something flew, trailing beer and froth, and hit a kifish head. "Got!" A mahen
voice crowed delight. Kif lunged, Khym lunged. Hilfy hit a kif with claws bared
and bodies tangled in the doorway. Yiiii-yinnnnn! a stsho voice wailed above the
din. "Yeeiei-yi! Police, police, police!"
"Yaooo!" (The mahendo'sat).
"Na Khym!"
Tirun's voice, a roar from outside the tangled doorway, inbound. "Hilfy! Na
Khym! Chanur!"
"Ayhar, ai Ayhar."
"Catimin-shai!"
Mugs and bottles sailed.
* * *
"He's on the Rows! Hurry!" Haral's voice came from the pocket com; and Pyanfar,
delaying for a check of eat-shops outside the market, started to run for all she
was worth, past startled mahendo'sat and stsho who leapt from her path, herself
dodging round the confused course of a methane-breather vehicle that zigged away
on another tack.
Sirens sounded. The three-story bulkhead doors of the market sector were
blinking with red warning lights. She put on a final burst of speed and dived
through asprawl as the valves began to move. The edges met with a boom and
airshock that shook the deck, drowning the din of howls beyond, and she gathered
herself up off the deck plates and ran without even a backward look.
The whole market was in turmoil. Merchants or looters snatched armfuls of
whatever they could; aisles jammed. Animals screeched above the roar. A black
thing darted past Pyanfar's legs and yelped at being trodden on. She vaulted a
counter, scrambled on a rolling scatter of trinkets, found a clear aisle and ran
toward the Rows where a moment's clear sight showed a heaving mass in the
doorway. Stsho darted from that crowd, pale and gibbering; drunken mahendo'sat
stayed to yell odds -- a pair of hani arrived from the other direction: Chur and
Geran headed full tilt toward the mass.
She jerked spectators this way and that, careless of her claws. Mahendo'sat
howled outrage and moved. A kif-shape darted past her, moving faster than clear
sight. She caught at it and got only robe as she broke through to the center of
the mob. Plastic splintered. Glass broke, bodies rolled underfoot.
More kif ran from the scene, a scatter of black-robed streaks outward bound at
speed.
"Khym!" Pyanfar yelled and flung herself in the path of his wild-eyed rush after
the kif. Behind him Haral and Geran added themselves; Chur and Tirun followed.
Hilfy jumped last, atop the heap on Khym's shoulders as it all came down in
front of her.
They stopped him. They held him down until the struggles ceased.
There was mahen laughter, quickly hushed. In prudence, mahe drew back to
perimeters, while the noise of looting went on in the market, the crash of
glass, the splintering of plastics, the polyglot wails of outrage and avarice.
"Gods rot you!" Pyanfar yelled, with a claws-out swipe at anything too near.
"Get!"
Mahendo'sat gave her room. A small knot of hani spacers stood facing her. Ears
were back. The Pride's crew gained their feet, Haral foremost, ears laid back
and grinning. Khym levered himself to his feet with Tirun holding fast to his
right arm and Hilfy locked to the other side. The last sounds of combat died
inside the bar. A last glass broke.
"Pyanfar Chanur," a broadnosed hani said in stark, disapproving tones.
"Tell it to your captain," said Pyanfar. "Tell it proper. He's my husband. You
hear? Na Khym nef Mahn. Hear me?"
Ears flicked. Eyes showed whites. The news had not gotten this far out, what
lunacy she had done. Now it did. "Sure," a younger hani said, backing up. "Sure,
captain."
And Chur, at her back: "Captain -- we'd better get out of here."
She heard the sirens. She looked about past the melting crowd, who sought other
bars. Trampled bodies stirred within the doorway.
There were cars coming up the dock, with the white strobe flash of Security.
Chapter Two
The door hissed back and revealed two guards, which at Meetpoint might have been
any oxy-breathing kind but stsho, considering the stsho's congenital distrust of
violence. They hired all their security. Fortunately for the peace at present,
these were both mahendo'sat.
Pyanfar stopped in her pacing of the narrow room -- waiting area, they had
called it: stsho euphemism. Other species had other names for such small rooms
with doorlocks facing outward. "Where's my crew?" she spat at the mahendo'sat
forthwith, ears flattened despite herself. "Gods rot it, where are they?"
"Director wants," one said, standing aside from the door. "You come now, hani
captain."
She pulled in her claws and came, since something finally seemed in movement,
and since neither of the two mahendo'sat were armed with more than nature gave
them and showed no desire for confrontation. They would not talk, not this pair;
not threaten or swerve from duty: mahendo'sat at punctilious, honest best.
"Here," was their only other word, at a lift door some distance through the
maze.
More traveling. The lift went a long zigzag distance through Meetpoint's bowels,
and let them out again in white, pastel-decorated halls. Lights obtruded here
and there in seeming random -- stsho, this section, not making apology to other
species' tastes, all pastels and opal colors, vast spaces, odd-angled panels
riddled with random holes and alcoves. The tall black-furred, black-kilted mahen
guards and the splash of her own scarlet trousers and red-gold hide were equally
alien here.
A last door, a last hallway of twisting plasti-form shapes. She flicked her ears
so that the rings chimed, flexed her claws with one deep breath as if she
contemplated a leap from some height, and let herself be shown into a
pearl-toned hall, a splendor of bizarre walls and white-upholstered depressions
in the level, gleaming floor. One gossamer-clad stsho stood to meet them,
recorder in hand. Another sat serenely important in the central bowl. Gtst
--(stsho had three sexes at one time, and neither he, she, nor it was really
adequate) gtst was ornamented in subtlest colors ranging into hues invisible to
hani eyes, but detectible at the verges, whites with low violet shimmerings on
the folds. Gtst tattooings were equally illusory on gtst naturally pearly skin,
and shaded off into green and violets. Pearl-toned plumes nodded from augmented
brows, shading moonstone eyes. The small mouth was clamped in disapproving
straightness and nostrils flared in busy alternation.
Pyanfar bowed before this elegance, once and shortly. The stsho waved a languid
hand and the servant-translator, it must be, came and stood near, gist own robes
floating free on invisible breezes -- stsho-silk and expensive.
"Ndisthe," Pyanfar said, "sstissei asem sisth an zis--" with the right amount of
respect, she reckoned. Feathery eyebrows fluttered. The assistant clutched gtst
recorder and drew back in indecision.
"Shiss." The Director motioned with one elegant jeweled hand. The translator
stopped in gtst retreat. "Shiss. Os histhe Chanur nos schensi noss' spitense
sthshosi chisemsthi."
"Far from fluent," Pyanfar agreed.
The Director drew breath. Gtst plumes all nodded in profound agitation. "Sto
shisis ho weisse gti nurussthe din?"
"Did you know--" The translator flung gtstself into belated action. "--the riot
in the market took four hours to stop?"
"--ni shi canth-men horshti nin."
"--Forty-five individuals are treated in infirmary-"
Pyanfar kept her ears erect, her expression sympathetic.
"Ni hoi shisisi ma gnisthe."
"--and extensive pilferage has taken place."
"I do share," said Pyanfar, drawing down her mouth in yet more distress, "your
outrage at this disregard for stsho authority. My crew likewise suffered from
this kifish banditry."
That got rendered, with much fluttering of hands.
"Shossmeinn ti szosthenshi hos! Ti mahen-thesai cisfe llyesthe to mistheth hos!"
"-You and your mahendo'sat co-conspirators have wreaked havoc-"
"Spithi no hasse cifise sif nan hos!"
"-involved the kif-"
"Shossei onniste stshoni no misthi th'sa has lies nan shi math!"
"--A tc'a ship has undocked and fled during the riot. Doubtless the chi are
disturbed--"
"Ha nos thei no lien llche knnni na slastheni hos!"
"--Who knows but what this may also agitate the knnn?"
"Nan nos misthei hoisthe ifsthen noni ellyes-theme to Nifenne hassthe shasth!"
"--You and your crew within three hours of docking have created havoc with every
species of the Compact!"
Pyanfar set her hands at her belt and lowered her ears deliberately. "As well
say all victims of crime are guilty of incitement! Is this a new philosophy?"
A long silence once that was translated. Then:
"--I am put in mind of papers lately recovered, hani captain. I am in mind of
heavy fines and penalties. Who will recompense our market? Who will see to our
damages?"
"It's true," Pyanfar said with a direct, baleful stare. "Who dares charge the
kif -- excepting hani. Excepting us, esteemed Director. Tell me, what would
happen without hani traffic here? Without mahendo'sat? How would the kif behave
at Meetpoint then? Not simple pilferage, I'll warrant!"
Plumes fluttered. Round eyes stared, dark centered. "--You make threats without
teeth. The han does not bend at your breath. Less so the mahendo'sat."
"Neither will the han look with favor on a hani ship beset, on a hani captain
detained -- I omit mention of the locked door!"
"--Have you such confidence you will relate to the han how a Chanur captain
suffered such embarrassment? I have heard otherwise. I have heard Chanur's
affairs are less than stable with the han in these days."
Pyanfar drew a long, long breath, wrinkling up her nose so that the translator
drew back a pace. "There is no profit in such a wager, esteemed Director."
"-What profit to any dealing with Chanur? We restore your papers and see how you
repay us. Where are our damages? Where will you obtain the funds, who claim to
be a terror to the kif? We fine you. You dare take nothing from them."
"They by the gods steal nothing from us except where we have relied on stsho
authority."
The moonstone eyes acquired wider, darker centers. "--You have brought a male of
your kind here. I hesitate to breach this delicacy, but it is well known that
this gender of your species is unstable. This surely contributed--"
"This is a hani affair."
"--Other hani find the state of affairs on your ship disturbing and improper."
"A hani matter."
"--A deputy of the han has shown concern. The deputy has assured me that this is
not new policy, that the han deplores this action--"
"It's none of the deputy's gods-rotted business. Or anyone else's. Let's stay to
the issue of safety on the docks."
"--Hani have not found it wise to bring their males into foreign contacts, for
which they are naturally unsuited and unprepared. Other hani are shocked at your
provocation."
"The docks, esteemed director. And public safety."
"--You have violated law. You have brought this person--"
"A member of my crew."
"--This person has a license?"
"He's got a temporary. All in order. Ask your own security."
"--A permit granted at Gaohn station. By a Chanur ally, doubtless under
pressure. He is here without permissions--"
"Since when does Compact law require permissions for listed crew?"
"--Since when does listed crew take liberty during unloading and visit bars?"
"This is my ship and my affair!"
"--It became a stsho affair."
"Indeed it did! And any other question is utter persiflage. Let us stay to the
issue: a kif attack on personnel of my ship; on personnel of my ship, who relied
on the security assured by stsho law and custom. We have suffered outrage; I
have suffered personal outrage in being detained for hours while kif assassins
doubtless do as they please on the docks, to the hazard of life and property,
some of which is mine -- and who guarantees the safety of my goods waiting
loading, when we are the victims of this outrage? I hold the station
responsible. Where are my crew, esteemed Director? And who pays the indemnities
we're due?"
This was perhaps too much. The translator wrung gist hands and stammered on the
words, bowed like a reed in the wind on receiving the reply.
"--Why not ask the mahendo'sat you conferred with?"
Pyanfar's ears went tight against her skull. She brought them up with utmost
effort, smoothed her nose and assumed a bland expression. "Would the director
mean perhaps the mahendo'sat whose registry board malfunctioned in this
well-ordered station?"
Another exchange. The translator's skin lost its pearly sheen and went dead
white. "--The director says gtst knows about this board. A subordinate has been
disapproved in this malfunction."
"It would be impolite to suggest higher connections. It would be stupid to doubt
them."
The translator made several gasps for air and performed, with further
hand-wringing. "--The subordinate in question had no inkling of higher
complicities, such as you and your co-conspirators arranged. This mahen ship has
elected departure during the disturbance. The disturbance reached also to the
methane-breathers. The director asks -- are you aware of this? Are you aware of
hazards with tc'a and chi?"
"Not my affair. Absolutely not my affair."
"--The director asks -- do you want the merchandise this person left?"
Pyanfar took in her breath, feeling an impact in the gut.
"--It is," the translator rendered the next remark, "perishable."
"I take it then station will deliver this merchandise . . . recognizing its
obligation."
"--There are entanglements. There is, for instance, the question of our damages.
This shipment is impounded."
"I refuse to be held to account for thieving krf! Take it up with the
mahendo'sat you dealt with!"
"I cannot translate this," the translator said. Gtst eyes were round. "I beg the
esteemed hani captain--"
"Tell gtst if I behaved as the kif did gtst would not be speaking to me about
damages."
"Ashosh!" the Director said: the translator turned and folded gtst hands on gtst
breast, lisped in softest tones, turned with moonlike eyes at widest.
"--We will speak of damages later. Now this merchandise, this -- perishabie
merchandise."
Pyanfar set her hands within her belt, stood with feet set. "In the estimable
Director's personal keeping, I trust."
"--Four canisters. Am I a menial, to keep such goods personally?"
"Gods rot it-" She amended that, flicking up her ears, trying for a quieter
tone. "Considering they are perishable, I trust there is some care being taken."
The translator relayed it. The Director waved a negligent hand. Gtst eyes were
unblinking, hard. "--Customs matters. Unfortunately the consignor in his haste
for departure left papers in disarray, lacking official stamps. Have you
suggestions, hani captain, that would prevent this property being sold at public
auction? There would, I am certain, be interested bidders -- some very rich.
Some with backers. Unless the esteemed Chanur captain takes personal
responsibility."
A blackness closed about the edges of the room, on everything but the graceful
nodding stsho.
"--Also," the stsho continued, "the matter of papers lately cleared. This
station is dismayed . . . utterly dismayed at the betrayal of its trust. I am
personally distressed."
"Let's talk," Pyanfar said, "about things good merchants like us both
understand. Like fair trade. Like deal. Like I take my small difficulty out of
Meetpoint within a few hours after getting my cargo in order, and I take it
elsewhere without a word to anyone about bribes and mahendo'sat. You want to
talk trouble, esteemed Director? You want to talk kif trouble, and word of this
getting back to your upper echelons? Or do you want to talk about the
merchandise, and finding my crew, and letting me take this off your hands --
with my permits in order -- before it gets more expensive for your station than
it already is?"
The translator winced, turned and began to render it in one hand-waving spate.
"Ashosh!" the Director said; and other things. A flush came and went over gist
skin, mottlings of nacre. The nostrils flared in rapid unison. "Chanur sosshis
na thosthsi cnisste znei ctehtsi canth hos."
Another flinch from the translator, a rounding of round shoulders as gtst
turned.
"Tell gtst," Pyanfar said without waiting, "gtst is in personal danger. From the
kif, of course. Say it!"
It was rendered. The Director's skin went white. "--Unacceptable. There is a
debt which in your doubtless adequate if unimaginative perception you must
acknowledge was incurred by your crew, to have released a member of your species
widely acknowledged to be unstable--"
"A member of my crew and my mate, you fluttering bastard!"
Nostrils flared. "--The debt stands. No agreement embraced such damages."
She drew her own breaths with difficulty, trying to think, hearing words that
sent small fine tendrils into quite different territory. Goldtooth, blast you--
There was a setup, all the way....
And her ears sank, so that the translator edged back a pace, gtst eyes wide and
showing the whites about the moonstone round of them. The director's plumes
fluttered, hands moved nervously.
"I make you a deal," she said. "We get that cargo, we get the money for you."
"--You will sign affidavits of responsibility."
"Don't push it, stsho."
"--Your visa is canceled," the answer came back. "And the visas of your crew and
this male hani, under whatever pretext you secured civilized permits for this
unstable person. You will forfeit your permission to enter our docks and forfeit
any Chanur ship's clearance to dock here until this debt is paid!"
"And this cargo?"
"Do you doubt us? I make you a gift of it. In appreciation for your own damages,
of course."
Pyanfar bowed. Gtst waved a hand at gtst attendant.
"Sthes!"
It was not at all the courteous farewell.
* * *
More corridors. There was an affidavit to be signed, the terms of which set a
cold misery at her stomach. She looked up from the counter and the stsho clerk
backed all the way around the desk dropping papers as gtst went.
"That do it?" she asked with, she thought, remarkable calm.
The stsho babbled, refusing to come closer.
"--Gtst say got more," one of the guards translated. She had heard that much.
She wrinkled her nose and the stsho dropped more papers, gathered them, gave
them to the mahendo'sat to avoid bringing gtstself closer.
"Customs release, hani captain. All fine you sign this."
"Wait, hani captain. Must secure permission to leave."
She drew small even breaths, signed this, signed that, kept directing no more
than baleful stares at the stsho official and gtst fluttering aides.
At last: "No more forms?"
"No, hani captain. All got."
"Crew," she demanded, for the third time and this time with a broad, broad
smile.
"Ship, hani captain; they long time got release. Same got release Ayhar clan. We
go you ship now."
"Huh," she said then, and took the open door, stalked out, with her mahen escort
to key the lift for her.
No other word. None seemed apt. She stared at the uninteresting pearl-gray of
the lift doors while the lift zigged and zagged its way through Meetpoint
station.
She thought, during that interval. Thought very dark wordless thoughts that
involved stsho hides and a certain mahe's neck, until the lift stopped and
opened its doors on the cold air and noise of dockside.
She oriented herself with a quick glance at the nearest registry board, a black,
green-lit square above the number 14 berth: Assustsi. She drew a cold,
wide-nostriled breath of the dockside taint-oil and coolants, cargo and
food-smells and all the mongrel effluvium of Meet-point, like and unlike every
other station of the Compact.
Leftward was Vigilance's berth, number 18. Ehrran clan ship. Doubtless someone
of the deputy's staff was nosedeep in reports, writing it all up for the han in
the worst possible light. Gods knew what that white-skinned bastard had spilled
to willing ears.
Or what Ayhar had had to say, to save its own skin. Gods-be-bound that
Prosperity and Ayhar would never claim responsibility, financial or otherwise.
Chanur's enemies in council would pounce on it, first chance.
She started walking, constantly aware of the two dark shadows that stalked
behind her, but ignoring them. Gantries towered and tilted in the curved
perspectives of the station wheel. The dock unfurled down off the curtaining
horizon as she walked, and she made out The Pride's berth, counting down from
fourteen to six.
There should have been canisters outside The Pride's berth. She made out none,
and thought further dark thoughts, still not looking back.
She passed berth 10, which had been Mahijiru. That berth was sealed completely,
the gantry drawn back with its lines in store-position. Number ten board
remained dark, not listing the name or registry of the outbound ship.
Malfunction. Indeed, malfunction.
Connivances, mahendo'sat with stsho-with stsho who ran before every wind that
blew -- and now, with Mahijiru on the run and Goldtooth unable to break the
director's neck in person -- was the prevailing wind kif-tainted?
It rankled, gods, it rankled, that stsho had dared confront her, stsho, that she
could break with one swipe of her arm. And dared not. That was the crux of it.
Stsho showed one face to the kif, one to the mahendo'sat-yet a third to hani:
non-spacing, stsho law had regarded hani till a century ago, because (though
hani preferred not to recall the fact) it was the mahendo'sat had given hani
ships. An artificially accelerated culture. Hani were still banned from stsho
space, on their very border. Trade was at Meetpoint only, or inside non-stsho
space.
And hani in their good nature were patient with these fluttering dilettantes who
bought and sold-everything. They backed Chanur to the wall. It was stsho doing.
Everything. And the han being political, and the han being shortsighted, and
most of all because she was a fool who expected otherwise, Chanur was in trouble
at home. Of course the stsho knew it, sure as birds knew carrion-had gotten news
even a hani ship like Prosperity had not; and threw it up in her face at first
chance.
Gods, that the han fed stsho bigotry and wielded it for a weapon--
A deputy of the han has shown concern--
Or -- a cold, fully sensible fear got past the outrage: the stsho had
independent sources and played everyone for a fool -- Goldtooth, the han, even
the kif. They were capable of that. Thoroughgoing xenophobes and slippery as
oiled glass. Lately the stsho had a new xenophobia to keep them busy. They had
humankind to worry about, with concerns and motives world-bound hani had no
least idea of.
Goldtooth, rot you, how much does gtst know? How much the bribe? Nothing holds a
stsho that's already paid.
Nothing persuades one against gtst own profit.
She walked past nine, eight, seven. She saw no activity outside The Pride. No
sign of any loaders, the cargo ramp withdrawn, the canisters missing. The cans
were inside, she hoped. She kept alert for any sight of kif on the docks and
found none. The few passersby with business on the dock were mostly stsho, a few
mahendo'sat, no hani. If they noticed the rare spectacle of a hani captain being
trailed by two hulking mahendo'sat station guards, they gave no sign of it. This
was Meetpoint, after all, where folk minded their business, knowing well how
trouble tended to travel down line of sight. At the upward-curved limit of the
horizon, only its bottom third visible, the great seal of the market zone was
still shut, on gods knew what kind of damage. Money was being lost while that
market was out of action. Hourly the tab went up.
The Pride's ramp access gaped ahead, berth six. She ignored her escort, not even
looking back at them as she took out the pocket com. "Haral. I'm coming in."
No answer.
"Haral." She walked up the rampway into the chill, yellow-lighted access,
hearing no footsteps behind -- walked warily, thinking of kif ambush even here.
Ambush and stsho treacheries.
She met a shut hatch beyond the bend of the tube. She had expected that, and hit
the bar of the com unit in the accessway. "Haral. Haral, gods rot it, it's
Pyanfar. Open up."
The hatch shot open at once, with a waft of warmer, familiar air. Tirun was
there; and Chur, appearing armed from the lower-deck ops room down the corridor.
Both showed the plasmed seams of recent wounds on their red-brown hides, Chur
with a stripe of plasm visible across the leather of her nose, a painful kind of
cut.
"Huh." She walked in past the lock. "Close that. Everyone aboard?"
"All accounted for, nothing serious."
She came to a stop and gave Tirun one long stare. "Nothing serious. Gods and
thunders, cousin!"
Tirun's ears fell. "On our side," Tirun said.
"Huh." She turned and stalked for the lift, with their company as the inner lock
hissed shut at her back. "Where's Khym?"
"Na Khym's up in his quarters."
"Good." She shoved that distress to the hindmost, swung about in the lift as
they got in with her. Chur anticipated her reach for the button, tucked her arm
behind her again in haste when she had pushed it. Pyanfar glared at her. "What
else is wrong? What's Haral doing up there?"
"Got a lot of messages in," said Tirun. "Still coming. Board's jammed."
"Huh." The lift slammed upward. Pyanfar studied the door in front of her till it
opened and spat them out on main, then strode for the bridge with a cousin on
either side. "Who's called in?"
"Stsho, mostly," Chur said. "One message from Ayhar's Prosperity. Banny Ayhar
requests conference at soonest."
"And some mahen nonsense," said Tirun. "No ship code."
She gave Tirun a second hard look, caught the lowered ears, the tension round
the nose. She snorted, walked on into the bridge where Haral stood to meet her,
where Hilfy got up from com-- o gods, Hilfy --with her side patched in bandages.
Geran with her right ear plasmed along a rip.
"You all right?" Haral asked. "We got a message from stsho central . . . said
you were coming."
"How courteous of them. They give you any trouble?"
"Kept us locked up filling out forms," said Geran. "Sent us out about an hour
ago."
"Huh." She sat down in her own place, at The Pride's controls, swung the chair
about in its pit to look at the solemn row of faces. Hilfy, her niece, young and
white about the eyes just now. Haral and Tirun, tall, wide shouldered, daughters
of an elder Chanur cousin; Geran and Chur, wiry and deft, daughters to Jofan
Chanur, her third cousins. A row of earnest, sober stares. She gazed last and
steadily at her brother Kohan's favorite daughter, at Hilfy Chanur par Faha with
a scratch down her comely nose and her ears, gods forfend -- plasm on a nick in
the left one. Heir to Chanur's mercantile operations, while-and-likely-after
Kohan Chanur ruled at home. On the last edge of adolescence. Fearfully proud.
Once and silently she wished Hilfy safe at home, but she did not say that. Home
was a long, long way away and Chanur interests were at stake.
"I want a watch on com," she said. "I want scan set to alarm if something comes
in, if something budges from this station. I don't care what it is. I want to
know."
"Aye," said Haral.
"Tally's back."
Ears went up. Eyes went wide. Hilfy sat down.
"Good gods," Chur said.
"Mahijiru's here. Was here. Goldtooth's cut loose and run." There were other
things to break to them, like being backed into agreements, like a fool of an
aging captain who had believed for one moment in a way out of what she had
gotten Chanur into, a way into human trade and all it meant. "He was going to
slip us a canister with a special cargo. Don't blame me--" She waved a hand.
"Goldtooth's originality, gods help us. But the stsho are playing power games.
That can's tied up in red tape in customs. I think I've got it fixed."
Chur and Tirun sank into seats where they were, ears back.
"Sorry," Pyanfar said tautly. "Sorry, cousins."
"Got a chance?" Haral asked. Meaning lost trade. Lost chances. A whole variety
of things, in loyalty too old to be completely blind. "The mahendo'sat've come
through?"
"Don't know. They just headed out and left us the package. There's worse news.
The kif are onto it."
"Gods." Geran leaned onto the back of Chur's couch. "And the bar fight--"
"Set up. Absolutely it was a set-up." She recalled with chagrin the kif watcher
while she had been on the docks. "Maximum confusion. Goldtooth kited out. Under
what circumstances- gods know. Messages were going up and down that dock like
chi in a fire drill. Maybe it was a kifish smash-and-grab. Maybe not. Likely it
was targeted at the stsho. They've sure got the pressure on."
"The kif know about that can?" Tirun asked.
"Gods-rotted mahe shoved a shipment out in the middle of bolting dock like their
tail was afire -- what else could they guess? Gods know who's been bribed. Gods
know how long the bribes will hold. --Khym all right, is he?"
Silence for a moment. Haral shrugged uncomfortably. "Guess he is," Haral said.
"He have anything to say?"
"Not much."
"Huh."
"Said he'd be in his quarters."
"Fine." She bit it off. They were blood kin, she and the crew. All Chanur. All
with the same at stake, excepting Khym, Mahn-clan, male, past his prime and his
reason for living and belonging anywhere. Her brother Kohan Chanur relied on
her, back home. Meetpoint in ruins. Kif on the loose. Stsho facing her down. The
Pride nose-deep in it again. She had gone softheaded as well as softhearted.
Hani everywhere muttered to that effect. Only her long-suffering crew would not
say it, even yet. And Hilfy, of course Hilfy. Worship shone undimmed in those
young eyes.
Fool kid, she thought. And to the crew at large: "What happened with our cargo
out there?"
"Cans on the dock were gone when we got back," Tirun said. "We filed a theft
report with station. Cans still inside are safe."
"Kif are fast. Power her up. We go on using station's hookups, but we keep our
own online. Look sharp, hear? Don't ask me how long this goes on. I don't know.
Contact customs. I want to know where that incoming shipment is."
No one mentioned costs or what the stsho might do. No one mentioned licenses,
and the docking rights and routes it had cost too much to regain. No one
mentioned Khym, a private folly that had long since become a public one. Not a
backward look. No protests. Just a quiet moving toward stations, the whine of
chairs receiving bodies all about her as she powered her own chair about and
keyed in the old com messages.
From a mahendo'sat, unidentified: "I leave paperwork, leave cans same station
office. Good voyage. Got go quick. Same you."
She drew one long, quivering breath.
From Ayhar's Prosperity: "Banafy Ayhar to Pyanfar Chanur: We have a matter
between us. I suggest we keep it private. I suggest you bring your witnesses to
my deck. Expecting immediate reply."
"In a mahen hell."
"Captain?"
She restrained herself from violence to the board. "Reply to Ayhar: Tell it to
the kif."
"Captain--"
"Send it."
Geran ducked her head and bent to the keys. Other messages crawled past, mostly
stsho: a dozen threats of lawsuit from irate bazaar merchants; two scurrilous
letters from stsho vessels in port, impugning Chanur sanity; others were
rambling. Four were anonymous congratulations in mahen pidgin, some sounding
inebriate, one babbling obscure mahen religious slogans and offering support.
From Vigilance, not a word.
"Tirun," said Chur behind her. "Got that customs contact." And a moment later:
"Captain," Tirun said. "Got the customs chief on. Claims the papers aren't in
order on that shipment."
She spun the chair about. "The Director cleared that! Tell gtst so."
"The customs chief says you have to come and sign."
"I signed that god-rotted thing!"
Tirun relayed as much, politely phrased. Amber eyes lifted. Ears flicked. "Gtst
says that was the customs release. Now they want a waiver against claims by the
consignor--"
She punched it in on her own com. "This is Pyanfar Chanur. If I come over there
I bring my whole ship's company. Hear? And you can explain that to the Director,
you flat-bottomed bureaucrat!"
Silence from the other end.
She broke the contact. "Tirun: you and Geran get across that dock to that office
and watch those cans all the way."
"Kif," Tirun said.
"Gods-rotted right the kif. They've got their bluff in on the stsho."
"Customs is back on," Chur said. "Give it to five." She punched it in. "Well?"
"I have schedule, hani."
"You just put us at the head of it. Hear? I'm sending my own security. I've been
robbed once at this forsaken station. Not again!"
She broke the connection, leaned back and exhaled a long, long breath, staring
at Tirun. "Get!"
"Aye!" Tirun and Geran scrambled up and headed for the door.
"Arm and take a pocket com!" she shouted after them. "And be gods-rotted
discreet about it!" She spun the chair left to Haral. "I want that forward hold
warmed and pressurized."
"How long's Tully been in there?" Hilfy asked.
Pyanfar shot a glance at the chronometer overhead. "Figure six hours. At least."
"How good's that lifesupport?"
"The way Goldtooth's set up the rest of this mess -- who knows?" She shoved her
chair around and keyed up comp, hunting cargo lists, mass records. "This list
updated?"
"No," Hilfy said.
"I need that list, gods rot it, niece." "I'm on it," Chur said, "Scan to your
number four, captain."
She smoothed her nose with an effort, twitched her ears and heard the jingling
of the several rings. Experience, they meant. Wealth. Successful voyages. She
sat and watched for anything untoward, monitoring station corn, scan, every
pulse and breath of information Meetpoint central let them have. Their own
systems showed live in a series of amber lights.
"Pressure's coming up," Haral said.
"Estimate of mass loss to three, captain."
She shunted it to Records. Comp brought up the revision. "Fine that down, Chur.
Navcomp's taking main five." "You've got them."
Nav's five segments unified themselves in comp and shunted other programs to
different banks: command screens acquired nav's displays. Maing Tol. From
Meetpoint that was Urtur to Kita Point to Maing Tol at best.
"We can't singlejump." she said at last. "Not with the cargo we've still got,
not anything like it."
Silence all round. "Aye," --finally, from Haral.
She sat staring at the graphs. "Aunt," Hilfy murmured, and turned her chair with
a wide-eyed look and the comset pressed in her ear. "Aunt, it's Geran. Says
customs has those cans loaded and out already; they have a bunch of mahen
security on it, too."
"Good gods. Something's going right. How long?"
"How long?" Hilfy relayed; and her eyes flickered as she listened. "They're
coming now."
"How's that pressure?"
"Pressure's good," Haral said.
"Captain--" Chur. "Someone's down at the access com -- It's Banny Ayhar,
captain. She wants to talk to you."
"Gods rot!" She punched in all-ship com. "Ayhar, get clear, hear me!"
"Who is this?"
"Pyanfar Chanur, rot your eyes, and clear my dock! There's an emergency in
progress."
"What emergency? Chanur, I'm not in a mood for more connivances. You hear me,
Chanur--"
"I've got no time for this." She spun the chair about and left it. "Haral, stand
by to open up that hold. And tell Ayhar get herself out of the way. Hilfy, Chur,
come on."
They heeled her down the corridor at an almost run, into the lift for downdecks.
She hit the button.
Com snapped from the panel above the lift controls, at the first lurch of the
car down. "Captain." Haral's voice. "Geran's on. They've got kif out there."
She put a claw in the slot before the lift had a chance to pass the next level
and stopped the car right there, on a level with the airlock. "Hilfy!" she said
in leaving, before Hilfy had a chance to follow her and Chur. "Go on below and
get that bay opened up."
"Aunt--" One youthful protest, hands lifted, before the door closed between.
They ran all-out, she and Chur, stopping only for the weapons-locker and the
com-panel in the hall.
"Get that hatch open!" Pyanfar yelled at Haral, and headed for the lock.
Chapter Three
They hit the access tube running and came round the bend headon into hani coming
up the accessway, a broad, scarred hani captain flanked by two senior crew.
Pyanfar evaded collision.
"Gods rot you--" Banny Ayhar yelled, and Chur cursed; there was the thump of
impact.
"Gods rot you!" Pyanfar yelled, whirling about, outraged, as Chur recovered from
her stagger and spun about at her side. "I told you clear my dock!"
"What's it take to bring Chanur to its senses?" Banny Ayhar yelled. "When's it
stop, hey? -- You listen to me, ker Pyanfar! I've had enough being put off--"
"We've got kif after my crew, blast your eyes."
"Chanur!"
She spun and gathered Chur and ran, with the thump of running Ayhar at their
heels at least as far as the passageway's exit onto the downward ramp.
"Cha-nur!" Banny Ayhar roared at her back, waking echoes off the docks; but
Pyanfar never stopped, down the rampway and past the frozen cargo ramp and the
gantry that hel$I The Pride's skein of station-links.
"Chanur." Far behind them.
There was a curious absence of traffic on the chill, echoing docks, and that
silence itself was a warning. Trouble was in sight even from here, around a big
can-loader grinding its slow way beside the ship accesses four berths distant.
An odd crowd accompanied it -- a half dozen mahendo'sat in station-guard black
strode along beside. Two red-pelted hani in faded blue breeches rode the flatbed
with the tall white cans, while a dozen black-robed kif stalked along in a tight
knot; and if any stsho customs officer was involved at all gist was either
barriered inside the cab or fled for safety.
"Come on," Pyanfar said to Chur -- no encouragement needed there. Chur kept
beside her as they crossed the space at a deliberate jog, not out to provoke
trouble, not slow to meet it either. Her hand was in her spacious pocket,
clenched about the butt of the gun she tried to keep still and out of sight, and
her eyes were constantly on that knot of kif, alert for anything kif-shaped that
might show itself from ambushes among the maze of gantries and dock-side clutter
to the right and the office doors to the left.
"Hai," she yelled with great joviality, when they were a single berth apart.
"Hai, you kif bastards, about time you came out to say hello."
The kif had seen them coming too. Their dozen or so scattered instantly all
about the moving can-carrier, some of them screened by it. But from the
carrier's broad bed, from beside the four huge cans, several mahen guards
dropped down to stand at those kif's backs.
"Good to see you," Pyanfar gibed, halting at a comfortable distance. Kifish
faces were fixed on her in starkest unfriendliness. "I was worried. I thought
you'd forgotten me."
"Fool," one hissed.
She grinned, her hand still in her pocket, her ears up, her eyes taking in all
the kif. Two moved, beyond the moving can-carrier, and she shifted to keep them
in sight. The smell of them reached her. Their dry-paper scent offended her
nostrils with old memories. The long-snouted faces peering from within the
hooded robes, the dark-gray hairless skin with its papery wrinkles, the small,
red-rimmed eyes -- set the hair bristling on her back. "Do something," she
wished them. "Foot-lickers. Riffraff. Petty thieves. Did Akkukkakk turn you out?
Or is he anywhere these days?"
Kifish faces were hard to read. If that reference to a vanished leader got to
them, nothing showed. Only one hooded face lifted, black snout atwitch, and
stared at her with directness quite unlike the usual kifish slink. "He is no
longer a factor," that one said, while the carrier groaned past under its load
of canisters and took itself from between them and four more kif.
More soft impacts hit the deck beside her. From the tail of her eye she saw a
red-gold blur. Tirun and Geran had dropped off the flatbed rear. They took up a
position at her left as Chur held the right.
"Get back," she said without looking around at her two reinforcements. "Go on
with the carrier. Hilfy's in lower ops. Get that cargo inside." The mahen
station guards had moved warily into better position, several dark shadows at
the peripheries of her vision, two of them remaining in front of her and behind
the kif.
"You carry weapons," that foremost kif observed, not in the pidgin even the
cleverest of mahe used. This kif had fluency in the hani tongue, spoke with
nuances -- dishonorable conceaied weapons, the word meant. "You have
difficulties of all kinds. We know, Pyanfar Chanur. We know what you are
transporting. We know from whom it comes. We understand your delicate domestic
situation, and we know you now possess something that interests us. We make you
an offer. I am very rich. I might buy you -- absolution from your past
misjudgments. Will you risk your ship? For I tell you that ship will be at risk
-- for the sake of a mahendo'sat who is lost in any case."
She heard the carrier growling its way out of the arena, out of immediate
danger. Chur had stayed at her side. So had the six mahendo'sat station guards.
"What's your name, kif?"
"Sikkukkut-an'nikktukktin. Sikkukkut to curious hani. You see I've studied you."
"I'll bet you have."
"The public dock is no place to conduct delicate business. And there are
specific offers I would make you."
"Of course."
"Profitable offers. I would invite you to my ship. Would you accept?"
"Hardly."
"Then I should come to yours." The kif Sikkukkut spread his arms within the
cloak, a billowing of black-gray that showed a gleam of gold. "Unarmed, of
course."
"Sorry. No invitation."
The kif lowered his arms. Red-rimmed eyes stared at her with liquid thought.
"You are discourteous."
"Selective."
The long gray snout acquired a v-form of wrinkles above the nostril slits, a
chain slowly building, as at some faint, unpleasant scent. "Afraid of
witnesses?"
"No. Just selective."
"Most unwise, Pyanfar Chanur. You are losing what could save you . . . here and
at home. A hani ship here has already witnessed -- compromising things. Do I
hazard a guess what will become of Kohan Chanur -- of all that Chanur --
precariously -- is, if anything should befall The Pride? Kohan Chanur will
perish. The name will have never been; the estates will be partitioned, the
ships recalled to those who will then take possession of Chanur goods. Oh, you
have been imprudent, ker Pyanfar. Everyone knows that. This latest affair will
crush you. And whom have you to thank, but the mahendo'sat, but maneuverings and
machinations in which hani are not counted important enough to consult?"
The transport's whining was in the distance now. She heard another sound, the
hollow escaping-steam noise of the cargo hatch opening up, the whine of a
conveyer moving to position and meshing; old sounds, familiar sounds: she knew
every tick and clank for what they were. "What maneuverings among kif?" she
asked the gray thief. "What machinations -- that would interest me, I wonder."
"More than bears discussion here, ker Pyanfar. But things in which a hani in
such danger as you are would be interested. In which you may -- greatly -- be
interested, when the news of Meetpoint gets to the han. As it surely will.
Remember me. Among kif -- I am one who might be disposed toward you, not
against. Sikkukkut of Harukk, at your service."
"You set us up, you bastard."
The long snout twitched and acquired new wrinkles in its papery gray hide.
Perhaps kif smiled. This one drew a hand from beneath its robe and she stepped
back a pace, the hand on the gun in her pocket angling the gun up all at once to
fire.
It offered her a bit of gold in its gray, knobbed claws. She stared at it with
her finger tight on the trigger.
"A message," it said, "For your -- cargo. Give it to him."
"Probably has plague."
"I assure you not. I handle it. See?"
"Something hani-specific, I'm sure."
"It would be a mistake not to know what it is. Trust me, ker Pyanfar."
It was dangerous to thwart a kif in any whim. She saw this one's pique, the
elegant turn of wrist that held the object -- it was a small gold ring -- before
her.
She snatched it, the circlet caught between her claws.
"Mistrustful," said Sikkukkut.
Pyanfar backed a pace. "Chur," she said, and with a back-canted ear heard the
whisper of Chur's move back.
Sikkukkut held up his thin, soot-gray palms in token of non-combatancy. His long
snout tucked under. The red-rimmed eyes looked lambent fire at her.
"I will see you again," Sikkukkut said. "I will be patient with you, hani fool,
in hopes you will not be forever a fool."
She backed up as far as put all the mahen guards between herself and the kif,
with Chur close by her. "Don't turn your backs," she advised the mahendo'sat.
"Got order," said the mahe in charge. "You go ship, hani. These fine kif, they
go other way."
"There are illicit arms," said another kif in coldest tones. "Ask this hani."
"Ours legal," said the mahe pointedly, who had heard, perhaps, too much of
mahendo'sat involvement from this kif. The mahendo'sat stood rock firm: Pyanfar
turned her shoulder, taking that chance they offered, collected Chur in haste
and headed across the dock, all the while with a twitch between her
shoulderblades.
"They're headed off," said Chur, who ventured a quick look over her shoulder.
"Gods rot them."
"Come on." Pyanfar set herself to a jog, not quite a run, coming up to The
Pride's berth, to the whining noise of the cargo gear. The loader crane had a
can suspended in midair, stalled, while three hani shouted and waved angry
argument at her crew beside the machinery.
"Ayhar!" Pyanfar thundered. "Gods rot you, out." She charged into the midst and
shoved, hard, and Banny Ayhar backed up with round eyes and a stunned look on
her broad, scarred face.
"You earless bastard!" Ayhar howled. "You don't lay hands on me!"
She knew what she had done. She stood there with the crane whining away with its
burden in fixed position, with Tirun and Chur and Geran lined up beside her as
the two Ayhar crew flanked their captain. Thoughts hurtled through her mind, the
han, alliances, influences brought to bear.
"Apologies." It choked her. "Apologies, Ayhar. And get off my dock. Hear?"
"You're up to something, Pyanfar Chanur. You've got your nose in it for sure,
conniving with the mahendo'sat, gods know what -- I'm telling you, Chanur, Ayhar
won't put up with it. You know what it cost us? You know what your last lunatic
foray cost us, while ships of the han were banned at Meetpoint, while our docks
at Gaohn were shot up and gods be feathered if that mahen indemnity covered
it--"
"I'll meet you at Anuurn. We'll talk about this, Banny, over a cup or two."
"A cup or two! Good gods, Chanur!"
"Geran, Tirun, get those cans moving."
"Don't you turn your back on me."
"Ayhar, I haven't time."
"What's the hurry?" A new ham voice, silken, from her side: Ayhar crew's
impudence, she thought, and turned on it with her mouth open and the beginnings
of an oath.
Another captain stood there, her red-gold mane and beard in curling wisps of
elegance; gold arm-band; gold belt; breeches of black silk unrelieved by any
banding. Immune Clan color. Official of the han. "Rhif Ehrran," that one named
herself, "captain, Ehrran's Vigilance. What's the trouble, Chanur?"
Her heart began slow, painful beats. Blood climbed to her ears and sank toward
her heart. "Private," she said in a quiet, controlled tone. "You'll excuse me,
captain. I have an internal emergency."
"I'm in port on other business," the han agent said. "But you've almost topped
it, ker Chanur. You mind telling me what's going on?"
She could hand it all to the Ehrran, shove the whole thing over onto the han's
representative in port.
Give Tully to her. To this. Young, by the gods young, ears un-nicked, bestowed
with half a dozen rings. And cold as they came. Gods-rotted walking recorder
from one of the public service clans, immune to challenging and theoretically
nonpartisan.
"I'm on my way home," she said. "I'll take care of it."
Ehrran's nostrils widened and narrowed. "What did the kif give you, Chanur?"
A cold wind went down her back. Distantly she heard the crane whining away,
lifting a can into place. "Dropped a ring," she said, "in the riot. Kif returned
it." The lie disgusted her. So did the fear the Ehrran roused, and knew she
roused. "This what the han's got to? Inquisitions? Gathering bad eggs?"
It scored. Ehrran's ears turned back, forward again. "You've about exited
private territory, Chanur. You settle this mess. If there are repercussions with
the stsho, I'll become involved. Hear me?"
"Clear." Breath was difficult. "Now you mind if I see to my business, captain?"
"You know," Ehrran said, "you're in deep. Take my advice. Drop off your
passenger when you get back to Anuurn."
Her heart nearly stopped while Ehrran turned and walked away; but it was Khym
Ehrran had meant. She realized that in half a breath more, and outrage nearly
choked her. She glared at Banny Ayhar, just glared, with the reproach due
someone who dragged the like of Ehrran in on a private quarrel.
"Not my doing," Ayhar said.
"In a mahen hell."
"I can't reason with you," Ayhar said, flung up her hands and stalked off.
Stopped again, to cast a look and a word back. "Time you got out of it, Pyanfar
Chanur. Time to pass it on before you ruin that brother of yours for good."
Pyanfar's mouth dropped. Distracted as she was she simply stared as Ayhar spun
on her heel a second time and stalked off along the dock with her two crewwomen;
and then it was too late to have said anything without yelling it impotently at
a retreating Ayhar back.
The first can boomed up the cargo ramp into the cradle; Tirun and Geran kicked
their own balky Loader around with expert swiftness, raised the slot's holding
sling and snagged it into the moving ratchets that vanished into The Pride's
actinic-lighted hold. The can ascended the ramp, while Chur, beside the crane
operator on the loader, shouted at the aggrieved mahe, urging her to speed.
"Chur!" Pyanfar yelled, headed for the ramp-way and the tube beyond. Chur left
off and scrambled after, leaving the docksiders to their jobs. Pyanfar jogged
the length of The Pride's ramp and felt a stitch in her side as Chur came up
beside her in the accessway.
A han agent on their case.
A chance to get rid of Tully into the keeping of that same agent and she had
turned it down.
Gods. O gods.
They scrambled through the lock, headed down the short corridor to the lift,
inside. The door hissed shut as Pyanfar hit the controls to start the car down,
rim-outward of The Pride's passenger-ring.
"Got it?" Haral's voice came to them by com.
"Gods know," she said to the featureless com panel, forcing calm. "Keep an eye
on those kif back there -- hear me?"
"Looks as if the party's broken up for good out there."
"Huh." It was a small favor. She did not believe it.
"Aye," Haral agreed, and clicked out of contact. The lift slammed into the
bottom of the rotation ring and took a sudden jolt afterward for the holds.
"Know which can?" Chur panted beside her, clinging to the rail.
"Gods, no. You think Goldtooth labeled the gods-rotted thing? Couldn't use the
small cans, no. Couldn't consign it direct to us. Had to trust the stsho.
Gods-rotted mahen lunatic."
The lift accelerated full out, lurched to a second stop and opened its door on a
floodlit empty cavern of tracks below the operations platform where they stood.
Their breaths frosted instantly. Moisture in the hold's lately acquired air
formed a thin frost on all the waiting cans and the machinery. The cold of the
deckplates burned bare feet. The gusting blasts of the ventilation system
brought no appreciable relief to unprotected hani skin and nose linings.
"Hilfy?" Pyanfar shouted, leaning on the safety railing to look down into the
dark. Hilfy-Hilfy-Hilfy the echo came back in giant's tones.
"Aunt!" A figure in a padded cold-suit crouched far below the operations
scaffold, a glimmer of white in the shadow of the first can to reach its cradle
at hold's end. "Aunt, I can't get this cursed lid off! It's securitied!"
"Gods fry that bastard!" Pyanfar ignored the locker with the coldsuits and went
thumping down the steps barefoot and barechested. The air burned her lungs,
froze her ribs. She heard noise behind her, a locker-door rattle. "Get those
suits!" she yelled at Chur, and her breath was white in the floodlight glare.
Another can locked through with a sibilance of pressurized air and a resounding
impact with its receiving cradle as she came down beside the can-track rails
that shone pewter-colored in the general dark. The incoming can rumbled past
like a white plastic juggernaut and boomed into the cradle-lock as she arrived.
Hilfy scrambled to the side of it and jerked the lever that secured the lid.
Internal-conditions dials glowed bright and constant on the top-plate.
"Locked too," Hilfy said in despair, rising, her voice muffled by the cold-mask
she wore, overwhelmed by the crash of another arriving can headed up the outside
ramp. "That Goldtooth give us any key-code?"
"Gods know. The stsho might have it." Pyanfar shivered convulsively as Chur came
pelting up with coldsuits and masks and thrust a set into her numb hands. She
stared distractedly as the third can locked through, ignoring the coldsuit,
thinking of stsho treachery the while the can rode the hydraulics down and
jolted into the third cradle. She shouldered aside Hilfy's move to check its lid
and tried it herself. Locked too.
"Gods-rotted luck," Pyanfar said, rising, fumbling the slot-apertured cold-mask
into place with fingers that refused to set their claws. The pads of her feet
felt the burn of the decking plates. She stared helplessly at Chur, who had
gotten her own mask on and held out the cold suit she had dropped. "It has to be
the last one, that's all."
"What if there is a key?" Hilfy asked. Her teeth chattered fit to crack, despite
the cold-suit. "And the stsho have got it.
"Number four's coming in," Chur yelled over the rising thunder of machinery, and
the fourth can locked through and rumbled down the track toward them as they
scrambled to meet it. Chur got to it first, crouched down and tugged fruitlessly
at the lid. "It's locked too."
"Gods and thunders!" Pyanfar yanked her pistol from her pocket and fired past
Chur into the lid mechanism, stalked down the row and fired at the next and the
next and the next. Maintenance lights on the lids went out. The smoke of burned
plastics curled up in the actinic light, mingling gray with their breaths. "Get
torches if you have to! Get those lids off."
"It's coming!" Chur cried, tugging at the smoking lid, and Hilfy dived to help,
past Pyanfar's own numb-footed advance on the can.
It was fish, a flood of dried fish, that sent its stench into the supercooled
air; the next one, dried fruit. The third--
"This is it," said Chur, pawing past the cascade of stinking warm shishu fruit,
for a second white lid showed through the spilling cargo. She reached it on her
knees and wrenched the lock lever down, tugged with all her might at the lid and
tumbled back as it came free.
A form like some insect in its cell lifted a pale, breather-masked face in a
cloud of steam as the inner air met outer. With a muffled cry Tully began to
writhe outward, in a frosting stench of heat and human sweat that almost
overcame the fish and fruit. Chur helped, kneeling -- seized Tully's
white-shirted shoulders and dragged him free in a tumble and slide of fruit, in
a cloud of breath and steam from his overheated body.
He gasped, struggled wild-eyed to his feet, hands flailing.
"Tully," Pyanfar said-he was blinded by the lights, she thought; he looked
half-drowned in the heat that narrow confinement had contained. "Tully, it's us,
it's us, for the gods' sake."
"Pyanfar," he cried and threw himself into her arms. "Pyanfar!" -- losing
breather-cylinder and hoses and stumbling through the stinking fruit in which he
had slid outward. He pressed his steaming self against her, his heartbeat so
violent she felt it through his ribs.
"Easy," she said. Hunter instincts. Her heart tried to synch with his. "Careful,
Tully." She kept her ears up all the same, carefully disengaged his shaking arms
and pushed him back. His eyes were wild with fear. "You safe. Hear? Safe, Tully.
On The Pride."
He babbled in his own tongue. Water poured from his eyes and froze on his face.
"Got," he said. "Got--" and abandoned her to dive back into the can, pawing amid
the tangle of discarded breathing apparatus and trampled fruit, to stagger up
again with a large packet in his grasp. He held it out to her, wobbling as she
took it from his hands.
"Goldtooth," he said, and something else that did not get past his chattering
teeth.
"He's going to freeze," said Chur, throwing one of the two coldsuits about his
thinly clad, hairless shoulders.
And perhaps he only then recognized the others, for he cried "Chur," and
staggered a step to fling his arms about her, shivering visibly as the cold
disspated the last of his heat. "Hilfy!" --as Hilfy unmasked herself; he reached
for her.
But his legs went and he slid almost to the ground before Hilfy and Chur could
save him. "Hil-fy!" --foolishly, from a sitting posture on the burning cold
deck, with Hilfy's arms about him.
"Get him up," Pyanfar snapped at them both. "Get him to the lift, for the gods'
sakes!" --waving them that way with the packet in one hand, for her feet were
freezing and Tully's wet clothes were stiffening, with crystals in his hair.
He made shift to walk when they had pulled him up. He hung on them the long,
long course down the tracks to the platform stairs, and labored the metal steps
with them supporting him on either side and Pyanfar shoving from behind. He
faltered at the top, recovered as they heaved him up with his arms across their
shoulders.
"Hang on." Pyanfar reached the lift and punched the button for them, held the
door open on that blast of seeming heat and the glare of light while Hilfy and
Chur between them dragged Tully in and held him on his feet. A dull white frost
formed on the lift surfaces.
"Paper," Tully mumbled, lifting his head.
"Got." She closed the door after her and sent the car hurtling forward. Chur
held Tully tight against her body and Hilfy pressed close on the other side as
the car reached the forward limit and started its topside climb.
"Get him to sickbay," Pyanfar said as it went. "Get him warm and for the gods'
sakes get him washed."
That brought a lifting of Tully's head. His beautiful golden mane was wet with
melting frost and clung to the naked skin about his eyes. He stank abysmally of
fish and fruit and scared human. "Friend," he said. It was his best word. He
offered that, and that frightened look. In distress Pyanfar reached out and
patted his shoulder with claws all pulled.
"Sure. Friend."
Gods, not to be sure of them. And to have come this far on hope alone.
"Got -- Pyanfar, got--" His teeth chattered, no improvement to his diction.
"Come see you -- Need -- need--''
The lift stopped on lower decks, hissed its doors open. "Take care of him,"
Pyanfar said, standing firm to stay aboard. "And do it fast. I want you on other
business. Hear?"
"Aye," said Chur.
"Pyanfar!" Tully cried as they dragged him out. "Paper--"
"I hear," she said, and held the packet as the door closed between them. "I got
it," she muttered to herself; and remembering another matter, put a hand into
her pocket and felt the ring beside the gun barrel, a ring made for fingers, not
for ears. Only mahendo'sat and stsho wore finger rings, having no under-finger
tendon to their non-retractile claws; having one more joint than hani had. Or
kif. Not to mention t'ca and knnn and chi.
A human hand was mahe-like. Tully had been in kifish hands once. They had gotten
him from them. And gods knew he would not forget it.
Gods-rotted Outsider. A few minutes dealing with him and she was shaking all
over. He had a way of doing that to her.
"He's all right?" Haral asked as she arrived sore-footed on the bridge.
"Will be. Shaken. I don't blame him." She settled to her chair, filthy as she
was, and curled her frost-singed feet out of contact with the floor. Haral,
immaculate, had the diplomacy not to wrinkle her nose. "You hear that Ehrran
business?"
"Some."
"Got ourselves one fat report going home, I'll bet. Tirun and Geran in?"
"They're dumping out that fish and fruit. Getting rid of the stuff. Spoiled
cargo, we call it. Send it out as garbage."
"Huh." She leaned back into the chair, hooked a claw into the plastic seal of
the packet and ripped it open.
"What's that?"
"Expensive," she said.
The fattish packet yielded several clips of papers, a trio of computer spools.
She read labels and drew a deep breath at finding the document Goldtooth had
given into Tully's hands -- virtually indecipherable mahen scrawl, a printed
signature, and hand-printed at the top: Repair authorization in crabbed
Universal Block.
". . . good repair . . .", she made out. That the rest of it was unreadable gave
her no comfort at all.
Another document, pages thick, swarming with neat humped type in alien alphabet.
She flipped through the pages with further misgivings.
Human? She guessed as much.
The third document (typed):
Greeting, it said. Sorry go now, leave you this. Got lot noise on dock, got kif,
got trouble, got one mad stsho give me trouble. I send can customs, trust stsho
Stle stles stlen not much far. He Personage on this station, got faint heart,
plenty brain. If, Stle stles stlen, you reading this I promise cut out you heart
have it for last meal.
Tully come big trouble. Mahen freighter Ijir same find his ship, human give him
come. "Bring Pyanfar," he say, all time "Pyanfar" not got other word. So I
bring. One stubborn fellow.
I know he ask hani help. Also I know the han, like you know han, lot politic,
lot talk, lot do nothing. Lot make trouble you about this mate business --
forgive I mention this, but truth. You stupid, Pyanfar, one stupid-bastard hani
give jealous hani chance bite your ankles. That translate? I know what you do.
You too long go outworld, got foreign idea, got idea maybe hani male worth
something. You sometime crazy. You know Chanur got personal enemy, know got lot
hani not like mahendo'sat, same got lot hani got small brain, not like change
custom, same got hani lot mad with stsho embargo. What you try, save time, fight
all same time? Hope you get smart, eat their hearts someday. But someday not
now. You go han they make big mess. I know. You know. You go han they turn all
politic. Instead go mahen Personage like good friend, take Personage message in
number one tape. Sorry this coded. We all got little worry.
Now give bad news. Kif hunting you. Old enemy Akkukkak sure dead, but some kif
bastard got ambition take Akkukkak's command. We got another hakkikt coming up,
name Akkhtimakt. I think this fellow lieutenant to Akkukkak, got same ugly way
make trouble, want prove self more big than Akkukkak. How do this? Revenge on
knnn not good idea. Revenge on human another kind thing; same revenge on you and
me. Ship in port name Harukk, captain name Sikkukkut. This number one bastard
claim self enemy this Akkhtimakt, want offer deal. This smell many day dead.
You add all same up, run mahen Personage. Paper good. You make number one deal
mahendo'sat this time. You got big item. Forget other cargo. Be rich. Promise.
You hani enemies not touch.
Wish all same luck. I got business stsho space. Got fix thing.
Goldtooth Ana Ismehanan-min a Hasanan-nan, same give you my sept name.
She looked up, ears flat.
"What's it say?" asked Haral, in all diffidence.
"Goldtooth wished us luck. Promises help. He's bribed the stsho. Someone got
those papers fixed to get us here and gods-be if any of it was accident." She
gnawed a filthy hangnail. It tasted of fish and human. She spat in distaste and
clipped the papers into her data bin. "Tell Tirun and Geran get out cargo
unloaded. Get Chur on it. Fast."
"All of it?"
She turned a stare Haral's way. It was a question, for sure; but not the one
Haral asked aloud. "All of it. Call Mnesit. Tell them get an agent down here to
identify what's theirs. Tell Sito sell at market and bank what's ours."
"They'll rob us. Captain, we've got guarantees; we've got that Urtur shipment
promised -- We've got the first good run in a year. If we lose this now--"
"Gods rot it, Haral, what else can I do?" Embarrassed silence then. Haral's ears
sank and pricked up again desperately.
So they prepared to run. Prepared -- to lose cargo that meant all too much to
Chanur in its financial straits, trusting a mahen promise . . . for the second
time. And for the first time in memory Haral Araun disputed orders.
"I'm going for a bath," she said.
"Do what with the incoming cargo?" A faint, subdued voice.
"Offer it to Sito," she said. "Warehouse what he won't take. So maybe things
work out and we get back here." Likely the stsho would confiscate it at first
chance. She did not say what they both knew. She got out of the chair and headed
out of the bridge, no longer steady in the knees, wanting her person clean, her
world in order; wanting--
--gods knew what.
Youth, perhaps. Things less complicated.
There was one worry that wanted settling -- before baths, before any other thing
shunted it aside.
She buzzed the door of number one ten, down the corridor from her own quarters,
down the corridor from the bridge. No answer. She buzzed again, feeling a twinge
of guilt that set her nerves on edge.
"Khym?"
She buzzed a third time, beginning to think dire thoughts she had had half a
score of times on this year-long voyage -- like suicide. Like getting no answer
at all and opening the door and finding her husband had finally taken that
option that she had feared for months he would.
His death would solve things, repair her life; and his; and she knew that, and
knew he knew it, in one great guilty thought that laid her ears flat against her
skull.
"Khym, blast it!"
The door shot open. Khym towered there, his mane rumpled from recent sleep. He
had thrown a wrap about his waist, nothing more.
"Are you all right?" she asked.
"Sure. Fine." His pelt was crossed with angry seams of scratches plasmed
together. His ears, his poor ears that Gaohn Station medics had redone with such
inventive care and almost restored to normalcy -- the left one was ripped and
plasmed together again. He had been handsome once . . . still was, in a ruined,
fatal way. "You?"
"Good gods." She expelled her breath, brushed past him into his quarters, noting
with one sweep of her eye the disarray, the bedclothes of the sleeping-bowl
stained with small spots of blood from his scratches. Tapes and galley dishes
lay heaped in clutter on the desk. "You can't leave things lying." It was the
old, old shipboard safety lecture, delivered with tiresome patience. "Good gods,
Khym, don't . . . don't do these things."
"I'm sorry," he said, and meant it as he did all the other times.
She looked at him, at what he was, with the old rush of fondness turned to pain.
He was the father of her son and daughter, curse them both for fools. Khym
once-Mahn, lord Mahn, while he had had a place to belong to. Living in death,
when he should have, but for her, died decently at home, the way all old lords
died; and youngsters died, who failed to take themselves a place -- or wander
some male-only reserve like Sanctuary or Hermitage, hunting the hills, fighting
other males and dying when the odds got long. Churrau hanim. The betterment of
the race. Males were what they were, three quarters doomed and the survivors, if
briefly, estate lords, pampered and coddled, the brightness of hani lives.
He had been so beautiful. Sun-shining, clear-eyed-clever enough to get his way
of his sisters and his wives more often than not. And every hani living would
have loved him for what he did at Gaohn, rushing the kif stronghold, an old lord
outworn and romantically gallant in the eternal tragedy of males--
But he had lived. And walked about Gaohn station with wonder at ships and stars
and foreignness. And found something else to live for. She could not send him
home. Not then. Not ever.
"It was a good fight," she said. "Out there."
His nose wrinkled. "Don't patronize, Py."
"I'm not. I'm here to tell you it wasn't your fault. I don't care how it
started, it wasn't your fault. Kif set it up. Anyone could have walked into it.
Me, Haral, anyone." His ears lifted tentatively. "We've got one other problem."
She folded her arms and leaned against the table edge. "You remember Tully."
"I remember."
"Well, we've got ourselves a passenger. Not for long. We take him to Maing Tol.
A little business for the mahendo'sat."
The ears went down again, and her heart clenched. "For the gods' sakes don't be
like that. You know Tully. He's quiet. You'll hardly know he's here. I just
didn't want to spring that on you."
"I'm not 'being like that.' For the gods' sakes I've got some brains. What
'business for the mahendo'sat'? What have you gotten yourself into? Why?"
"Look, it's just a business deal. We do a favor for the mahendo'sat, it gets
paid off, like maybe a route opens. Like maybe we get ourselves that break we
need right now."
"Like the last time."
"Look, I'm tired, I don't want to explain this all. Say it's Goldtooth's fault.
I want a bath. I want -- gods know what I want. I came to tell you what's
happened, that's all."
"That kif business . . . have anything to do with this?"
"I don't know."
"Don't know?"
Aliens and alien things. He was downworlder. Worldbred. "Later. It's under
control. Don't worry about it. You going to be all right?"
"Sure."
She started then to go.
"I was remarkable, Py. They arrested me and I didn't kill even one of them.
Isn't that fine?"
The bitterness stopped her and sent the wind up her back. "Don't be sarcastic.
It doesn't become you."
"I didn't kill anyone, all the same. They were quite surprised."
She turned all the way around and set her hands on her hips. "Gods-rotted stsho
bigots. What did they say to you?"
"The ones in the bar or the ones in the office?"
"Either."
"What do you expect?"
"I want an answer, Khym."
"Office wouldn't speak to me. Said I wasn't a citizen. Wanted the crew to keep
me quiet. They wanted to put restraints on me. Crew said no. I'd have let them
go that far."
She came back and extended a claw, straightened a wayward wisp of mane. He stood
a head taller than she; was far broader-they had at least put weight back on
him, from that day she had found him, gone to skin and bones, hiding in a hedge
outside Chanur grounds. He had been trying to find his death then, had come to
see her one more time, in Chanur territory, with their son hunting him to kill
him and Kohan apt to do the same . . . if Kohan were not Kohan, and ignoring him
for days: gods, the gossip that had courted, male protecting male.
"Listen," she said. "Stsho are xenophobes. They've got three genders and they
phase into new pysches when they're cornered. Gods know what's in their heads.
You travel enough out here and you don't wonder what a stsho'll do or think
tomorrow. It doesn't matter. Hear?"
"You smell like fish," he said. "And gods know what else."
"Sorry." She drew back the hand.
"Human, is it?"
"Yes."
He wrinkled his nose. "I won't kill him either. See, Py? I justify your
confidence. So maybe you can tell me what's going on. For once."
"Don't ask."
"They think I'm crazy. For the gods' sakes, Py, you walk in here with news like
that. Don't kill the human, please. Never mind the kif. Never mind the
gods-be-blasted station's going to sue--"
"They say that?"
"Somewhere in the process. Py -- I don't put my nose into Chanur business. But I
know accounts. I was good at it. I know what you've put into this trip, I know
you've borrowed at Kura for that repair--"
"Don't worry about it." She patted his arm, turned for the door in self-defense,
and stopped there, her hand on the switch. She faced about again with a courtesy
in her mouth to soften it; and met a sullen, angry look.
"My opinion's not worth much," he said. "I know."
"We'll talk later. Khym, I've got work to do."
"Sure."
"Look." She walked back and jabbed a claw at his chest. "I'll tell you
something, na Khym. You're right. We're in a mess and we're short-handed, and
you gods-rotted took this trip, on which you've gotten precious few
calluses...."
The eyes darkened. "It was your idea."
"No. It was yours. You gods-rotted well chose new things, husband: this isn't
Mahn, you're on a working ship, and you can rotted sure make up your mind you're
not lying about on cushions with a dozen wives to see to the nastinesses. That's
not true anymore. It's a new world. You can't have it half this and half that --
you don't want the prejudice, but you gods-rotted well want to lie about and be
waited on. Well, I haven't got time. No one's got time. This is a world that
moves, and the sun doesn't come round every morning to warm your hide. Work
might do it."
"Have I complained?" The ears sank. The mouth was tight in disaste. "I'm talking
about policy."
"When you know the outside you talk about policy. You walk onto this ship after
what happened in that bar and you walk into your quarters and shut the door,
huh? Fine. That's real fine. This crew saved your hide, gods rot it, not just
because you're male. But you sit in this cabin, you've sat in this cabin and
done nothing-"
"I'm comfortable enough."
"Sure you are. You preen and eat and sleep. And you're not comfortable. You're
eating your gut out."
"What do you want? For me to work docks?"
"Yes. Like any of the rest of this crew. You're not lord Mahn any more, Khym."
It was dangerous to have said. So was the rest of it. She saw the
fracture-lines, the pain. She had never been so cruel. And to her distress the
ears simply sank, defeated. No anger. No violence. "Gods and thunders, Khym.
What am I supposed to do with you?"
"Maybe take me home."
"No. That's not an option. You wanted this."
"No. You wanted to take on the han. Myself -- I just wanted to see the outside
once. That's all."
"In a mahen hell it was."
"Maybe it is now."
"Are they right, then?"
"I don't know. It's not natural. It's not--"
"You believe that garbage? You think the gods made you crazy?"
He rubbed the broad flat of his nose, turned his shoulder to her, looked back
with a rueful stare.
"You believe it, Khym?"
"It's costing you too much. Gods, Py -- you're gambling Chanur, you're risking
your brother to keep me alive, and that's wrong, Py. That's completely wrong.
You can't stave off times. I had my years; the young whelp beat me."
"So it was an off day."
"I couldn't come back at him. I didn't have it, Py. It's time. It's age. He's
got Mahn. It's the way things work. Do you think you can change that?"
"You didn't see the sense in another fight. In wasting an estate in back and
forth wrangling. Your brain always outvoted your glands."
"Maybe that's why I lost. Maybe that's why I'm here. Still running."
"Maybe because you've always known it's nonsense and a waste. What happened to
those talks we used to have? What happened to the husband who used to look at
the stars and ask me where I went, what I'd seen, what outside the world was
like?"
"Outside the world's the same as in. For me. I can't get outside the world. They
won't let me."
"Who?"
"You know who. You should have seen their faces, Py."
"Who? The stsho?"
"Ayhar."
"Those godforsaken drunks?"
"Last thing they expected -- me in that bar. That's what the stsho owner said.
'Get away from me, get away from my place, don't go crazy here.' "
"Gods rot what they think!"
"So? Did I teach them anything? Stsho didn't want to serve me in the first
place. And I'd had -- well, two. To prove I wouldn't, you know -- go berserk.
And then the riot started. What good's that going to do you -- or Kohan?"
"Kohan can take care of himself."
"You're asking too much of him. No, Py, I'm going back downworld when we get
back."
"To do what?"
"Go to Sanctuary. Do a little hunting."
"--be the target of every young bully who's honing up his skills to go assault
his papa, huh?"
"I'm old, Py. It catches up with a man faster. It's time to admit it."
"Gods-rotted nonsense! You'll go back to Anuurn with a ring in your ear, by the
gods you will."
He gave a smile, taut laugh, ears up. "Good gods, Py. You want my life there to
be short, don't you?"
"You're not going downworld."
"I'll beg on the docks till I get passage, then."
"Gods-rotted martyr."
"Let me go home, Py. Give it up. You can't change what is. They won't let you
change. Gods know they won't let me. Whatever you're trying, whatever
grandstanding nonsense you've gotten into -- give it up. Stop now. While there's
time. I'm not worth it."
"Good gods. You think the sun swings around you, don't you? Ever occur to you I
have other business than you? That I do things that don't have a thing to do
with you?"
"No," he said, "because you're desperate. And that's my fault. Gods, Py--" A
small, strangled breath, a drawing about the mouth. "It's cost enough."
"You know," she said after a moment, "you know what's kept the System in power?
The young expect to win. Never mind that three quarters of them die. Never mind
that estates get ruined when some young fluffbrain gets in power over those that
know better and tries to prove he's in charge. The young always believe in
themselves. And the graynoses flat give up, give up when they've got the estate
running at its best -- They get beaten and it's downhill again with a new lord
at the helm. All the way downhill. You know other species pass things on, like
mahendo'sat: they train their successors, for the gods' sakes--"
"They're not hani. Py, you don't understand what it feels like. You can't."
"Kohan ignored you right well."
"Sure. Easy. I wasn't much. He still ignores me. How do you think I'm here?"
"Because I say so. Because Kohan's too old and too smart to hold his breath till
I give in. And by the gods the next time some whelp comes at him with challenge
we'll tear the fellow's ears off. First."
"Good gods, Py! You can't do that to him--"
"Keep him alive? You can lay money on it. Me. Rhean. Even his Faha wife. Not to
mention his daughters. Maybe some son, who knows? -- someday."
"You're joking."
"No."
"Py. You remember the fable of the house and the stick? You pull the one that's
loose and it gets another one--"
"Fables are for kids."
"--and another. Pretty soon the whole house comes down and buries you. You start
a fight like that in the han and gods know -- gods know what it'll do to us."
"Maybe it might be better. You think of that?"
"Py, I can't take this dealing with strangers. I get mad and I can't stand it, I
ache, Py. That's biology. We're set up to fight. Millions of years -- it's not
an intellectual thing. Our circulatory system, our glands--"
"You think I don't get mad? You think I didn't want to kill myself some kif out
there? And I by the gods held my temper."
"Nature gave you a better deal, Py. That's all."
"You're scared."
He stared at her, eyes wide in offense.
"Scared and spoiled," she said. "Scared because you're doing what no male's
supposed to be able to do; and guilty that maybe that makes you unmasculine; and
gods-rotted spoiled by a mother that coddled your tempers instead of boxing your
ears the way she did your sister's. He's just a son, huh? Can't be expected to
come up to his sister's standard. Let him throw his tantrums, and keep him out
of his father's sight. Makes him potent, doesn't it? And gods, never let him
trust another male. Rely on your sister, huh?"
"Leave my family out of this."
"Your sister hasn't done one gods-rotted thing to back you. And your worthless
daughters-"
"My sister did back me."
"Till you lost."
"What's she supposed to do? Gods, what's it like for her, living in Kara's house
with me running about as if I were still--"
"So she's uncomfortable. Isn't that too bad? Spoiled, I say. Both of you, in
separate ways."
His ears were back, all the way. He looked younger that way, the scars less
obvious.
"You want," she said, "the advantages I have and the privileges you used to
have. Well, they don't go together, Khym. And I'm offering you what I've got.
Isn't it enough? Or do you want some special category?"
"Py, for the gods' sake I can't work on the docks!"
"Meaning in public."
"I'll work aboard." A great, gusting sigh. "Show me what to do."
"All right. You clean up. You get yourself to the bridge and Haral'll show you
how to read scan. It's going to take more than five minutes." She sucked at her
cheeks. She had not meant to make that gibe. "You can sit monitor on that. Our
lives may depend on it. Keep thinking of that."
"Don't give me--"
"--responsibility? -- Nice, boring, long-attention-span jobs?"
"Gods rot it, Py!"
"You'll do fine." She turned and punched the door button with a thumb claw. "I
know you will."
"It's revenge, that's what it is. For the bar."
"No. It's paying your gods-rotted bar bill same as any of us would."
She stalked out. The door hissed shut like a comment at her back.
Chapter Four
Tully was at least on his feet -- seemed to be feeling like Tully, which meant
insisting on cleaning himself up if he wobbled doing it, crashing about the
lowerdecks washroom talking to himself (or thinking that he was being
understood) and generally insisting on his privacy from females even if they
were of different species. Hilfy dithered between communications from Haral
topside via the hallway com panel, frantic requests from Chur in the op room
down the corridor (Tirun and Geran were busy down in cargo offloading canisters,
with attendant booms and thumps up through the deck plates), and the barricaded
washroom into which disappeared a pair of Haral's blue trousers and out of which
issued steam and the indescribable mingle of human-smell, fruit, fish and
disinfectant soap.
"You all right?" Hilfy asked, when a hairless arm snaked the offered trousers
from around the corner of the door. "Tully, hurry it up. We've got other
problems. Fast? Understand?"
A mumbled answer came back and the door went shut as if he had leaned on the
control as soon as she had gotten her arm out. Hilfy looked round in desperation
as Chur came trotting back from ops waving a pair of pocket corns and with a
third clipped to her drawstring waist. "Got it," Chur said. "Translator's up and
running."
"Thank the gods." She pounded on the door again, whisked it open as Chur thrust
a pocket com and earplug around the corner to their passenger and drew her arm
back. "Tully--" she said to the unit Chur gave her. She put the earplug in with
a grimace. "Tully? You hear me now?"
"Yes," the sound came back, mechanical, from the com loop to the translating
computer. "Who talk?" The translator's syntax was far from perfect.
"Tully," Chur said, "it's Chur talking. Hilfy and I got other work, understand?
Got to go. You hurry it up; we take you to quarters, get you settled in."
"Got talk to Pyanfar."
"Captain's busy, Tully."
"Got talk." The door opened. He leaned in the doorframe, wearing blue hani
trousers, which fit, but barely; and shirtless like themselves. His all but
hairless skin was flushed from the heat inside and his mane and beard were
dripping wet. "Got talk, come # # talk to Pyanfar."
"Tully, we've got troubles," Hilfy said. "Big emergency." She took him by the
arm and Chur took the other, drawing him along despite his objections. "Got
cargo troubles, all kinds of troubles."
"Kif." He went stiff and stopped cooperating. "Kif are here?*'
"We're still at dock," Hilfy said, keeping him moving. "We're sitting at
Meetpoint and we're as safe as we're going to be. Come on."
"No, no, no." He turned and seized her arms with his bluntfingered hands, let
her go and shook at Chur. "# No # # #"
Hilfy shook her head at the static breakup. The translator missed those words.
Or never had them.
"Hilfy, Chur -- mahen # take # ship # human. I bring papers from #. They ask #
hani make stop these kif. Got danger. We're not safe # Meetpoint."
"What's he mean?" asked Chur, her ears gone lower, up again. "You catch that?"
"Go get hani fight these kif," Tully said.
"Good gods," Hilfy said.
"Friend," he said again, the hani word, that sent garble through the translator,
less forgiving of his mangled pronunciation. His strange blue eyes were aflicker
with fear and secrets. "Friend."
"Sure," Hilfy said. She felt a cold lump at the pit of her stomach, hearing the
clank and whine of cargo at work below. Things clicked into place of a sudden,
that her aunt had committed them to something more than running an illegal
passenger -- being desperate, with Chanur's financial back to the wall.
It was more than human trade Tully brought. Trade might save their hides.
But entanglements with kif, deals with a mahendo'sat who was not the trader he
gave out to be--
And the likes of Rhif Ehrran breathing down their backs all the while -- she had
heard it all from Chur.
The han would have their ears.
Pyanfar took the com to the shower with her, hung it on the wall outside. On the
day's record so far, she expected calamities.
The first call brought her dripping from shower to the mat outside undried, mane
and beard and hide cascading suds.
"Captain." Haral's voice.
"Trouble?"
"Na Khym's here. Says you said he should sit scan monitor."
"Show him what he needs."
Dead silence from the other end. Then: "Aye, captain. Sorry to bother you."
Back to the shower then, to wash the suds off. She slicked the mane back,
flattened her ears and squinched her eyes and nostrils shut, face-on to the
water-jet for one precious self-indulgent second. She sneezed the water clear
and cycled from water to drier, fluffing out her mane and beard, enjoying the
warmth.
The com beeper went off again.
"Gods rot." She left the heat and stood damp and shivering by the hook, fumbling
the answer slot. "Pyanfar."
"Captain." Haral again. "Got a kifish message couriered in. From one Sikkukkut.
Says it's for you personally."
"Open it."
A long silence. "He's offering partnership."
"Good gods." She forgot the physical cold for a deeper shock.
"Says he wants to talk with you face to face. Says -- gods ---he's talking
specifics here. He names ships he says are after us. Says we have mutual
enemies. He gets into kifish stuff here -- pukkukkta."
"Gods-rotted pukkukkta changes meaning in every context -- get linguistic comp
on that. Get it on the whole thing -- Keep alert up there."
"Aye, captain. Sorry."
"All right." She sneezed and cut the com off, returned to the shower and
recycled the dryer.
"Captain. Captain."
She left the staff and snatched up com. "For the gods' sake, Haral--"
"--Captain, sorry. That request for scheduling -- It seems we're being sued. Got
six lawsuits against us and station says it can't give clearance without--"
She shut her eyes a moment, composed her voice and kept it very calm. "Get the
station-master online. Tell gtst to issue orders."
"By your leave, I've tried, captain. Call won't go through. The stationmaster's
office says gtst is indisposed. The word was gstisi."
Personality crisis.
"That gods-rotted white-skinned flutterbrain isn't going to Phase on us!
Countersue the bastards and start prep for manual undock as soon as they get
that cargo clear. Get everyone on it down there. And send a message to the
director and say if gtst doesn't get this straightened out I'll give gtst new
personality more damages to worry about, some of them to gtst person."
"Aye," Haral said.
She threw clothes on, her third-best trousers, green silk with moire orange
stripes in the weave; a belt with bronze bangles; the pearl for her ear. Her
best armlet, the heavy one. The alien ring was on the counter, from the pocket
of the red breeches. She considered, dropped it indecisively into her pocket,
pocketed the gun again, clipped on the com and pattered out into the hall in
haste, claws clenched, headed for the bridge.
"Captain." The pocket com again, this time from her belt. "Captain, I got the
stationmaster on."
"I'm coming," she said, and hastened, down the corridor into the open door.
Haral looked about; Khym sat at the righthand station, intent on the scan, the
light flickering off his dutiful, martyred scowl.
Haral handed her the transcription. "Gtst is out. A new individual is in power.
I think it's still the last one, in a personality shift. The new Director wants
payment in full. Says we got the better of the last director, drove gtst into a
crisis that wasn't due for twenty years, and this one's determined to get gtst
money up front. Intends to impound all offloaded cargo."
"Gods rot--" She swallowed it, seeing the movement of Khym's all-too-hearing
ears backward at her voice. She read the demand for payment. "Four hundred
million--"
"Nine hundred with the lawsuits. I think that's the problem. Someone important
has sued and gtst has to do something."
"I could guess who."
"Gods. Kif. Possible." Haral rubbed her scarred nose, looked up from under her
brow. "You thinking of breaking port?"
"Maybe."
"If we do it they'll blackball us. Every stsho port. Every stsho facility.
They'll never lift the ban."
"Same if we don't pay."
"Aye, captain," Haral said morosely. And lifting her ears: "Captain, we could
offer them the profit. Earnest money, like. Offer to give them more'on next
trip. Gods know how we'll pay off the shippers -- but that's tomorrow. And it'll
be tied up in litigation anyway, soon as it hits Site's warehouse."
"Maybe." Pyanfar combed her beard with her claws, looked distractedly toward
Khym's broad back. Shook her head as at some heavy blow.
"How's that unloading going?" She missed the sound of the conveyors of a sudden.
"Finished down there?"
"Sounds like."
"Rot their eyes." Meaning stsho. She sucked in her mustache ends and gnawed at
them. "Pukkukkta."
"Captain?"
"Pukkukkta. What did comp say it meant?"
"Like trade of services." Haral snatched up a printout and offered it to her
hand. "Like revenge. This is the item. Over regular channels, it was."
Greeting, the message said, Chanur hunter. Beware Parukt; Skikkt; Luskut;
Nifakkiti. Most of all beware Akkhtimakt of Kahakt. These aspire; that one
aspires most. I Sikkukkut am with you in pukkukkta for this cause and speak to
you in words which precisely describe kif, therefore ambiguity of translation
lies at your feet.
I Sikkukkut know about your passenger and likewise say this: wisest to give this
passenger to me. You would then be rich. But I Sikkukkut know the sfik of hunter
Pyanfar that this passenger has sfik-value and will be defended. Therefore I
Sikkukkut say to the sfik of Pyanfar Chanur that she must give this word to this
passenger: I Sikkukkut will speak with him at an appropriate time.
Shelter by my side, hunter Pyanfar. Together we might make a fine pukkukkta, and
the cost is less today than tomorrow.
Signal me and I Sikkukkut shall come to the dock where we shall find a quiet
place to talk.
"Kif bastard," Pyanfar said, and crumpled the paper. "He wants Tully. That's
what he wants. That's what would buy him status."
She looked at Khym, who sat listening to it all, saying nothing; but his ears
were back. "Consign a can at random to Harukk. Tell them and then tell the
stsho."
"To the kif?" Haral gasped, and Khym turned round at his post with the whites of
his eyes showing.
"As a gift. To one Sikkukkut, captain of Harukk. Let the stsho sue him."
A thoughtful, wicked look came into Haral's eyes, bewilderment to Khym's.
"No one sues the kif," Khym said.
"No," Pyanfar said, "they won't. And let Sikkukkut and the station worry what's
in that can, whether it's valuable or not. If he won't take it he'll have to
wonder. If he does and finds nothing but trade goods -- kif have remarkably
little sense of humor, where face is involved. Sfik. And gods know if he has one
of his cronies pick it up he'll have to wonder whether he got all that was in
it. Kif don't trust each other. They can't."
"But--" Khym said.
"No time. Do it, Haral."
"Aye." Haral sat down at com, stuck the receiver in her ear and punched out a
blinking light. "Captain, that's Tully again. He's called up here a dozen times.
Keeps asking something about a packet of papers. He wants to come up here and
discuss it with you."
"Gods." She raked at her beard distractedly and stared round her at the bridge,
at Khym's broad back as he kept dutifully to the board, proving -- proving
things to her. Deliberately. Stubbornly.
Then she realized what she was thinking and thrust the thought away. Male and
male, same space. Old ways of thinking died hard. He's not hani, for the gods'
sakes. And they're on the same ship.
"Tell him come up," she said. "Tell everyone get up here soon as they secure the
hold. Prep ops for undock. And send that message."
"Aye." Haral's voice droned the communications in sequence. She punched from one
to the other channels without amenities. Then in snarling stsho: "Meetpoint
Central Control, this is the hani ship The Pride of Chanur, berth 6, responding
to your notification regarding cargo: must inform you can 23500 has already been
consigned to berth 29, Harukk--"
"Get through to Sikkukkut," Pyanfar said to her back. "Tell him there's a
shipment for him in the hands of the stsho."
"You can't afford to lose that cargo," Khym said, swinging round. "To stsho or
to kif. Pyanfar--"
"Captain," she said, folding her arms. His eyes burned. She stood her ground.
"You're on the bridge. It's captain. Eyes to that board."
He visibly trembled. The sigh gusted through his nostrils like the breath of a
furnace. And he turned back to the board.
"Huh," she said, her worst anticipations overturned.
"The stationmaster wants to talk to you," Haral said. "I think it's gtst
interpreter."
"I'll take it." She sat down in her place at controls and stuck a com plug in
her ear, leaned toward the board pickup and punched the blinking light. "This is
Pyanfar Chanur. Have you a question, esteemed director?"
"The director informs you--" the reply came back "--this high-handed threat will
not suffice. We have your signed acknowledgment of responsibility, but this does
not cover lawsuits and our liabilities. We wish payment now."
"Is that so?" Her lips drew back as if she had the director in sight. "Tell the
director gtst new Phase is a scoundrel, a liar and a pirate."
A pause. "--Our demand is just. The damages of four hundred million must be paid
and the lawsuits must be settled--"
"Collect it from the kif."
"--If The Pride of Chanur undocks without payment it will violate treaty and
application for reparations will go to the hem. Now this message would be more
convenient than usual to deliver."
She sucked in her breath. Gods. For a stsho, the old bastard had a certain
flair.
"--Your response."
"Bargain. On the one hand we will countersue. If we lose we will appeal to the
court at Llhie nan Tie, to Tpehi, to Llyene, and the case will go on for years
-- while gtst remain legally responsible for holding our goods in warehouse
while litigation proceeds."
"--This might be acceptable."
"On the other hand-on the other hand, esteemed director--"
"--Get quickly to this other hand."
"If the request for payment were otherwise phrased, and if Meetpoint makes
itself responsible for all present and future lawsuits out of the settlement,
money might be forthcoming."
"--Please restate. Was this an offer of payment?"
"The station assumes full financial responsibility for present and future suits
and reparations arising from the riot, releases all cargo claims, trades with
our factors at listed station exchange rates, and provides us one unified bill
for The Pride's damage repair."
"Please restate, Chanur captain. This translator understood 'ship damage
repair.'"
"You have it right."
A delay. "--This smacks of illegality."
"Absolutely not. We will swear to damages suffered by The Pride during the
disturbances. Never mind what kind. I'm sure you have the talent to word it so
we can both sign it."
"Please; please, this translator must be correct"
"You've got it. You clear our record, expedite us out, and pad that gods-rotted
bill as much as you want. I'll meet you on the dock with the credit
authorization in a quarter hour."
"--This is subterfuge. Chanur is known destitute."
"Revise your information, esteemed director. Chanur just called in a debt."
Prolonged silence.
"Well?"
"Excuse, esteemed Chanur captain. This will take consideration."
"You by the gods get me out of here."
More silence. "Please be discreet."
"Would the esteemed director contact me on an unsecure channel? The esteemed
director is no fool. It would not be profitable for gtst to appeal to the han,
in whatever form. This would surely tie up the funds in litigation." She turned
and motioned furiously at Haral. "Legal release," she said into the pickup; and
to Haral, and her eyes fell on Khym once-lord-Mahn, on a tense expression turned
her way. She motioned at him, listening with one ear to stsho dithering. Do it,
she mouthed. "--Listen, I told you, pad the bill all you want. I'm not coming to
the office again. You're coming to the docks and you're going to sign a release
for all damages, hear that?"
There was frantic activity to her right. Haral had comp reeling up legal forms
and Khym was leaning over her shoulder muttering corrections and wordings.
By the gods, Mahn's ex-lord, ex-legal counsel. In his element.
She grinned at the mike and listened to more blather. "Simply put," she said to
the director, once Stle stles stlen, "you sign ours, we sign yours, we get our
papers clear and our cargo sold for top going rate, and you can show the High
Director at Nsthen you got full compensation, right? Otherwise you report unpaid
damages. Which do you want?"
"The director relays to you gtst profound distress that Chanur should have been
slandered by fools. Gtst is sending you the papers at once and further sends you
a gift to make amends for this misunderstanding."
"Chanur will reciprocate in acknowledgment of the director's wisdom in detecting
these slanders." She searched rapidly through the data bin for the appropriate
forms, copied those, snagged the one that Harai thrust into her hand, fully
printed, bilingual in stshoshi and ham and ready for signature. "Profound
gratitude, yes." She broke the contact and flipped the documents looking for key
clauses. "Watertight?"
"Full release," Khym said.
"It had better be." She gathered up all the papers, spun the chair on its
mechanism. "Eyes back to that scan, hear?"
"You need escort, captain?" Haral asked.
"You stay here. Tell Hilfy meet me at the lock. I gods-rotted don't need
protection from the stsho and I want you at controls. In case." She flung
herself out of the chair and headed for the door.
Tully was inbound, in great haste. "Pyan-far!" he cried.
"Sorry, Tully, no time." She brushed past, or tried. He caught her arm.
"Got talk! Pyanfar!"
"No time, Tully. Haral -- see to him."
"No # listen I # go #!" He snatched again when she broke the grip and tried to
overtake her in the hall. "Pyanfar!"
As she left him behind.
"Pyanfar-- "
She made it into the lift and shut the door between. She punched com. "Haral.
Get Tully under wraps. Get him his drugs for jump. And stay by those controls!"
Not the most logical series of orders. Gods, Tully and Khym loose on the same
level of the ship, Haral busy--
The lift stopped on lower deck. The door opened, on Tirun, Chur and Geran,
standing at the lift. Haral's voice rang through the lower corridor -- "Who's
free down there?"
"Get topside," Pyanfar said, coming through them, papers in hand. "Move it,
hear?" Their fur was draggled, dark-tipped with sweat. They smelled of it. "Get
Tully put somewhere."
"Aye."
The door closed and they went up. She headed down the corridor at a long stride,
where Hilfy waited at the lock, slant-eared and with the whites showing round
her eyes.
"Calm down, imp," she said, meeting that look. "It's just the stsho this time."
But she still had the gun in her pocket. It lately seemed a good idea.
The Pride's area of the dock was quiet now, ghostly quiet, with the giant doors
to the market still sealed, with the cargo access shut and the station's cargo
ramp drawn back and dark. No cans stood about the dock. Only the gantry
remained, the huge air ducts socketed to the vent panel beside the water in- and
outflow hoses, but those were in shutdown inside. The sensor-bundle, the
sextuple power cables and the com lines: that was all that tied The Pride to
station now, those and the access tube, the station personnel ramp, and the
probe and grapples that, behind that triple-thick wall, added failsafe to The
Pride's own steel-armed grip.
Not much, compared to the truck-wide cargo ramp. Not much to hold them now that
that link was free. A ship could break away from grapples if it had to, taking
damage and trusting station valves and gates to shut. Not even kif had done such
a thing, reckless as they were of life, but stsho in their paranoia might think
of such possibilities.
Pyanfar cast one narrowed look at that contact with their docking probe and
thought such lawless thoughts. Like turning pirate.
Like what a desperate hani could do, if she lost a gamble with the mahendo'sat
and the han and there were nothing left at home. Her crew would stay loyal and
to a mahen hell with the han if Kohan Chanur died.
Good gods. The thought chilled. It came of advancing age.
Of having a male aboard. Put the mind in different modes. Like hunt and nest and
kill the intruders instead of the polite surrender to the han on which
civilization rested. Pulling sticks, Khym called it. Hani ships going far and
wide across Compact space with males aboard and all the attendant mindset in the
crews. Riot on station docks, interHouse brawls, crews at odds with other crews
and hani born in space, never knowing Anuurn under their feet at all, with no
Hermitage in reach.
Gods, what am I doing here? -- standing by Hilfy, gun in pocket, watching a
stsho official car come humming up the dock. Somehow she had gotten into this.
The steps to it eluded her at the moment, but the steps that led from it--
A kif offered alliance -- and for one fleeting moment it truly looked
attractive. She was running out of friends.
The car rolled up and stopped humming; hummed again in a different key as the
door slid down and Stle sties stlen's current persona put out a pink-shod foot.
The translator got out the other door and hastened round with a flurry of robes
like rainbow light, to offer gtst hand to the director.
Stle stles stlen (or whatever gtst called gtstself this hour) straightened to
gtst feet and waved gtst limp-wristed, long-fingered hand. "Shoss."
A paper appeared from some depth of the translator's robes. Gtst offered it,
gtst mooncolored eyes fluttering in wide nervousness.
"Take it," Pyanfar said to Hilfy, assuming the loftiness the stsho understood:
assistants traded papers, perused them.
"Bill," Hilfy read in a small strangled voice, "for 1.2 billion credits, aunt."
"I figured. Let me see that."
Hilfy handed it over. Document-reading proceeded to a higher level as Stle sties
stlen took the release forms into gist own pearly hands.
A long rustling of pages while the gantry lines thumped and hissed overhead.
"All right," Pyanfar said.
"Hesth," said Stle sties stlen, and in hani: "Where is this money?"
She held out the appropriate paper. Stle stles stlen took it in gtst own hands,
and gtst head came up and gtst eyes went wide.
"Well?" Pyanfar said, keeping her ears up, her expression confident and bland.
"--This is an extravagant power," the translator rendered.
"Of course it is. And I'm sure the esteemed director will want to file that
copy. I keep the original."
"Esteemed hani friend," said Stle sties stlen.
"Got a pen?"
Stle stles stlen snatched it from the translator and offered it gtstself. If
gtst had had external ears they would have pricked far forward.
She signed; gtst signed; documents changed hands and Chur and the translator
signed. Hectic flushes almost to pink chased nacre across Stle sties stlen's
pearly skin.
Gtst looked up with adoration in gtst eyes, waved gtst hand and out of the
inexhaustible rainbow robes, the translator brought a smallish presentation box,
which Stle sties stlen proffered gtstself.
"Accept this trifle."
"Munificent." Pyanfar pocketed the box. "Your files have my manifest: do select
a case of Anuurn honey for your table."
"Excellent hani."
"I go first on the departure list."
"Oh, yes." Gtst bowed, fluttered. "At earliest." Gtst backed toward the car and
stopped, looking wide-eyed, then ducked inside.
The translator saw the director inside and the door raised, whisked gtst rainbow
self around to gtst own side.
The car hummed to life, opaqued its windows, and hummed a quick u-turn, off down
the docks.
"Aunt--" Hilfy said.
She turned, expecting one of the crew had come outside.
She saw instead a kit between them and the lock, and her hand twitched toward
her pocket -- prudently stopped with a mere twitch. She stood stiff-legged,
hearing Hilfy sotto voce beside her, the belt-com doubtless thumbed: "Haral, for
the gods' sakes -- Haral -- there's a kif out here-"
The kif flourished a hand among its robes, billowing the hem like the edge of
some dark wing. It sauntered forward with the ease of an old, old friend.
"That you, Sikkukkut?"
"Strange. I can tell hani apart."
"Get off my dockside."
"I came to follow up my message. The ring. How did your passenger receive it?"
"I forgot. Frankly, I forgot."
"Can it be he couldn't receive it? Damaged in shipment, might he be? That would
distress me."
"I'm sure it would. Get out of my way."
"Your crewwoman's calling help, is she?"
"You won't want to stay around to see."
The thin wrinkled snout acquired a chain of wrinkles. "So you're putting out.
Beware of Kita Point."
"Thanks."
More wrinkles. "Of course. There are such limited ways out of Meetpoint. Except
for those the stsho permit. Except for us -- who go where we like. I wonder
where Mahijiru is."
"Don't know, then? Good."
"Your sfik will kill you."
"My ego, is it? -- Come on, Hilfy." She started forward, picking a course to The
Pride just out of kifish long-armed reach. But he moved to intercept them.
"We are both hunter-kinds, hunter Pyanfar." And with a twitch of that long
hairless nose: "Kif are better."
"Hani are smarter." She had stopped, hand in pocket. "I have a gun."
Sikkukkut's long black nose gained wrinkles and lost them. "But being hani --
you dare not use it unless I prove armed. This is the burden of a species its
hosts fear not."
"It's called civilization, you earless bastard."
A dry kifish sniffing, like laughter. "The stsho are grass to us. You will not
join with me."
"In a mahen hell."
He lifted both hands, palm outward. "I do not challenge, hunter Pyanfar."
Her hand tensed on the gun, to be quick; but the tall kif turned his
black-cloaked back and walked off with that peculiar stalking gait.
"Sfik," Hilfy muttered, who was the linguist among them. "Means like pride, like
honor, if the kif had any."
"If," Pyanfar said, staring after the kif and not forgetting a sweep about to
see if there were confederates lurking: there were not. "That mouth may speak
hani; that brain's pure kif. Move it. Get out of here."
"I have a gun," Hilfy said, backing away as she was told. "Come on, aunt. Let's
both get out of here."
"Huh." She backed, turned, grabbed Hilfy by the arm and both of them hastened up
the rampway into the access, headon into Tirun and Chur who were coming out.
"Good gods," she said when her heart had restarted.
"Sounded like you had trouble," Tirun said.
"It walked off," she said, and gathered them all up, marched them ahead of her
past the safety of the airlock. Chur shut the door.
"Kif?" asked Tirun then.
"Kif," she said, and looked around sharply at movement to her left, where Geran
stood, with Tully.
"Got talk," he said.
"Geran, for the gods' sakes I said settle him."
"It's urgent, captain."
"Everything's urgent. Get in line."
"Aunt," Hilfy said, with that kind of look Hilfy could get when something was
utterly out of joint.
"Got paper," Tully said, breathless. "Got--" The translator garbled over mangled
hani words.
"Get me a plug, will you?" One materialized out of Hilfy's pocket, and she put
the audio into her ear. "Tully, what are those papers?"
"Got paper say human come fight kif # # need hani."
"Rot that translator. I'm losing that." "Human come fight kif." A very cold lump
settled to her stomach. "Why, Tully?"
"Make kif #. Friend, Pyanfar. Bring lot human come fight kif." The cold grew
colder still.
"Sounds like," said Tirun, "more than one ship involved."
"They want help," said Hilfy. "That's why he came. That's what I think he's
saying. It's nothing to do with trade."
"Gods," she muttered, and looked up, at an earnest human face, at four crewwomen
with iaces taut with the same kind of thoughts. "Kif know this, Tully?"
"Maybe know," he said. He drew a great breath and let it go, held out his hands
as if appeal could get past the translator. "Come long way find you. Kif -- kif
make trouble # one time fight Goldtooth friend."
"Goldtooth," she said. The name was a bad taste in her mouth. "What am I
supposed to do with you? Huh?"
"Go Maing Tol. Go Anuurn."
"Gods rot it, Tully, we got kif up to our noses!"
His pale eyes locked on hers, desperate. "Fight," he said. "Got make fight,
Py-an-far."
She lowered her ears and brought them up again, glancing round at her crew.
Scared faces. Looking to her for answers.
"Ought to give him to Vigilance," she muttered, "and advertise it to the kif."
No one said anything. She imagined the consequences for herself if she did that.
The fragile Compact broken wide open, kif chasing a han deputy ship.
Or Ehrran leaving him on a stsho station, where not a hand would be raised to
prevent kif from walking in and doing what they liked. Kif would do anything, if
profit in doing it outweighed the profit in restraint.
"Where we taking him?" Tirun asked. "Maing Tol, Goldtooth says."
"Captain -- We do that and that blackbreeches'll have our ears. Begging the
captain's pardon."
More questions of her orders. She stared at Tirun, at a cousin, an old comrade;
at another Chanur whose life was at risk.
"You want to turn him over to Ehrran, Tirun?"
Tirun stood there with her ears down, with rapid thinking going on behind her
eyes. "We could send another can to Vigilance," she said. "Let that kif bastard
wonder."
The idea struck her fancy. But: "No," she said, thinking of those same
consequences. "Can't risk it. Come on." She seized Tully by the arm and dragged
him into motion, then abandoned the grip as she headed for the lift. "Get Tully
settled. Get his drugs for him and get up to the bridge."
"Go?" Tully asked, close at her heels. "Pyanfar go Hoas?"
"Urtur," she said, reaching the lift. She looked back as Chur and Hilfy took him
by the arms. Tirun punched the door and held it. "Going to Urtur. Going fast.
Take the drugs. Stay out of the way. Understand?"
"Got," he said, and let them pull him off down the hall. She stepped into the
lift and Tirun got in and pushed the buttons.
One worried look from Tirun. That was all.
"I know," she said, which summed it up. She pulled the presentation case from
the pocket where she had put it, opened it as the car shot upward.
A note. Beware Ismehanan-min, it said.
Meaning Goldtooth.
She handed it to Tirun.
The door opened on the upper corridor.
Chapter Five
There was quiet on the bridge, a great deal of calm and quiet, considering the
situation, Khym brimming with questions, and a handful of exhausted crew. No one
said a word. Six pairs of eyes were on her, expecting her to come up with
something remarkably clever.
1.2 billion credits. Hilfy still looked to be in shock.
"Got a few problems," Pyanfar said, sinking into her chair, which was turned to
face the bridge at large. "I think we'd better take that docking clearance the
stsho promised and get ourselves our of here before they change their minds.
Chur, Hilfy, you sure Tully's set, got his drugs, knows to stay put."
"Aye," Chur said.
"I don't promise we get a calm ride out of here. And we're going to push it
hard. We're headed for Urtur. We're stripped. We can one-jump it. When we come
in there we keep our ears pricked and get the news. Gods send it isn't kif. --
Questions?"
Dead quiet.
She picked up a courier cylinder from the document pocket on the side of the
chair. "Chur."
"Aye."
"Get one of the docking crew to shoot that through the pneumat. Fast."
Chur took it, whirled and headed out of the bridge with a scrape of claws. So
that was seen to. If Stle sties stlen did not have all their messages
intercepted, rot his pearly hide.
"Crew to stations. -- Khym--" She stood up and in the general mill of crew
taking seats she took Khym's arm and took him into the small nook of quiet in
the corridor outside.
"For this one I recommend the tranquilizer," she said. "Tully takes it. Topside
med kit still has it."
"I don't need it," he muttered, his ears gone down. "I don't need--"
"Listen to me. Old hands lose their stomachs in this kind of thing. G like
planetary lift; we'll be cycling the vanes--"
"I'm not going to my cabin. Look, you wanted me on the bridge, work, you said--"
"You're not staying on the bridge."
"There's the observers' seats."
"No."
"Please, Py." His voice sank to its lowest pitch. His amber eyes were quick and
large. "Captain. Win a ring, you said. In front of them, for the gods' sake, Py.
I won't make trouble. Won't."
Her ears fell; her heart went over. "Gods rot it, this isn't a simple hop from
port to port."
"Part of the crew. Isn't that what you meant?"
"This isn't a question--"
"Pride's pride, Py. You put me there; you by the gods leave me there. Or do you
think the crew won't have it?"
Soft-headed, that was what.
"You take number one observer," she said. "You watch Geran watch scan and if you
get sick in the cycles you by the gods reach the bags undercabinet, I don't care
what else is going on. If you haven't ridden through a high-v vector change with
someone heaving up you haven't seen a mess. Got it?" She jabbed him with one
sharp claw, saw him go tight around the nose. "Besides, it fogs the screens."
Without a word he ducked back into the bridge.
She went back behind him, while he set himself into the first of the three
observer posts, at Geran's elbow: Geran gave him a look, betraying no dismay,
but a look all the same. He fumbled after belts and began fastening them-not
nervous, no. He only missed the insert twice.
She slipped into her own place, snapped the restraint one-handed and powered the
chair about all in one smooth sequence, because she could, and failed to realize
why she did it until she had.
She argued him onto the bridge for one reason and turned surly when he put
himself there. And knew it. Gods.
"Ready to disengage the probe," Haral said. "Chur's still down there. Hilfy,
advise Vigilance they've got a message coming."
"Aye." A small delay. "They acknowledge. That's all."
She gave Rhif Ehrran that, she was not prone to destructive chatter.
Advise you, that couriered message said, kif on our trail. Stop at nothing, even
attack on han deputy. Do not attract interest. Station at hazard. Ours more. We
take evasive measures, best possible. No explanation possible.
Well to be out of port when that hit Ehrran's lap.
A series of thumps rang up from the bow, The Pride's own language of clangs and
bumps, reliable as her telltales: docking probes had retracted; vents were
sealed. Outside the station hull, the grapples disengaged.
"Gantry's clear," Haral said, busy with the prep sequences.
"Where's Chur? She make it?"
Com relayed. "She's coming," Tirun said. "All clear."
"Give me out-schedule."
"Up," Tirun said, and: "Huh."
Banny Ayhar's Prosperity was on the list, outbound for Urtur via Hoas Point. So
was Marrar's Golden Sun.
There went gossip on its way to Anuurn, fast as a loaded merchant ship could
travel and carry an Ehrran message.
Likewise a stsho ship had gone outbound half an hour ago, one E Mnestsist, Rhus
flisth' ess commanding. Hoas-bound for Urtur.
So every ship bound from Meetpoint to mahen-hani space had to go to Urtur via
Hoas. Unless they were doing it cargo-stripped, to make Urtur in a single jump.
The Pride's own course showed Urtur-via-Hoas, which was a lie.
There were other possibilities from Meetpoint: Nsthen in stsho space, where only
stsho and methane-breathers were allowed. The tc'a border-port of V'n'n'u; the
tc'a port of Tt'a'va'o: methane-breather/stsho again. The kif port of Kefk, the
one kifish corridor to Meetpoint; Kshshti in the Disputed Territories. Messages
could go a great many ways from Meetpoint, that being the nature of Meetpoint in
its conception.
And a tight-beamed lightspeed message could get to an outbound ship like E
Mnestsist before it had time to jump. It could still do a vector change ... if
one Stle sties stlen had something gtst wanted relayed.
Conniving bastard.
The Pride of Chanur was listed departure -----, without a time. They had been
bumped up ahead of Prosperity and Golden Sun.
That would not sweeten Barmy Ayhar's mood, no question at all.
And there was not a single kif listed.
"No telling what's been delayed off that list," she muttered. "Could have a raft
of kif leaving ten minutes behind us. Station that can't keep its registry
boards running dockside, gods know what it does with out-schedules when money
changes hands- Power up, Haral: keep us null for outbound."
"Up," Haral said; she heard the distant sound of the pumps delivering their
load; the electric whump! of startup normally followed by the louder crash of
cylinder-lock going off; but it stayed locked. They would have no G but
after-thrust on this system transit. Safer that way. It made sudden moves safer.
She heard the sound of running feet scramble into the bridge at her back; heard
a body hit a seat.
"Chur's in."
"Message went," Chur said over the com, above the noise. "Saw it go into the
slot."
"Helm to one." Helm to her own board. She pushed buttons, let the auto-interlock
stay in during the undock, the computer reckoning their mass and how hard to
push to stay inside legal parameters. The holds were empty. The thrust-indicator
was way down. The ordinary mark would have hit The Pride like a hard kick at an
empty can.
"Aunt." That was Hilfy at com one. "Question."
"Ask it."
"That bill--"
"What about that bill?"
"Mahendo'sat paying that?"
"Huh. Yes."
"They know it?"
"Tell you something, imp. There's two strong reasons for one-jumping this. One
of them's the kif."
"Gods, aunt--"
"Tirun, you teaching the kid to swear?"
"How do we pay it?"
"It's paid. Goldtooth paid it. He just doesn't know it yet. Stand by the vector
shift. We're not going out of here like last time. By the book, at least till we
get running room."
They reached the l-zone limit, two-vectored as they were with station's spin and
their own bow-thrust, headed tailfirst across the invisible mark. She gave the
port thrust a ten-second burn that slewed the bow about in the same line as spin
and gave comp its heading.
"But, aunt--"
The comp did the next burn, trueing up. "Put it this way. All of you listening?
There's a little matter with the mahendo'sat. They're paying the bar bill. Hear?
-- Put her zero two on mark, Haral. Get the cameras working port-side."
"Want a look at that kif?"
"Number one right, cousin. Geran, handle that."
"Got it. Image to your four."
The image came to fourth screen on her board, clear, fine color, the outside of
Meetpoint Station, a portion of its torus shape, the huge painted dock numbers
obscured here and there by ships nose-on to station. "Main that," she said. The
drifting image went to all stations, the strange shape of a stsho trader, the
sleek, wicked silhouette of kif, leaner than they had to be; and one, one with
uncommonly large vanes and a series of tanks about the waist.
"Those tanks will blow off real easy," she said. "Take a good look, Hilfy, Khym.
A real good look."
"Hunter-ship," Hilfy said.
"No trader. That's for sure. Gods-rotted kif hunter. That's Harukk, no need to
look for numbers." She keyed the safety systems to *ADVISE ONLY* and pushed the
mains in hard.
G hit, pressed her elbow into the brace and triggered the over-arm lock that
held her hand within reach of the board. New system. It worked. She had rigged
The Pride with what protections they could afford, since Gaohn; handholds,
line-rigs, braces at all boards. A few extra firearms, quietly acquired.
"That's the kif reason," she said against the G. "And the other one for putting
a little hurry on -- I'd like to beat a certain check to the bank."
"Can we cover it?" Tirun's voice, over com. "-Later?"
"Huh. That's still Goldtooth's problem."
"What's going on?" asked Khym.
Silence, except for ship noise, the long misery of acceleration.
"What's going on?" he asked again.
"Just a business arrangement," she said. "Hold onto your stomach. We're coming
up on two-range. Going to give ourselves a boost."
"Pyanfar--"
"Tell you later. Haral, set her up."
"Captain, got another ship undocked," Chur said from scan.
"Gods rot. Who?"
"Can't tell yet. Station's not talking. Stand by."
They were not yet far enough and fast enough for C to play havoc with
information: not far enough and fast yet by far to be out of range of that sleek
kif ship back there.
That ship could start out a day late and be waiting for them on Urtur rim. No
question. She drew quiet small breaths against the G and calculated. A rush
after them made no sense, for a ship that fast.
It was not kif that had undocked. She was willing to bet not kif. It had no need
to race, being able to guess their course.
"Ship is knnn."
"Oh, good gods."
"What's the matter?" (Khym.)
Knnn. Methane-breathing, dangerous and lunatic in their moves. No one wanted the
knnn stirred up.
And kif trouble might. Any trouble might.
"What's the matter?" (Khym again).
"Long explanation," Pyanfar muttered. "Hold the questions, Kyhm. We're busy."
"Com coming up," Hilfy said.
An insane wailing came over com, knnn-song, which announced to the universe and
other knnn whatever it was the knnn thought good to say.
Or it was simply singing for its own amusement, and putting it out on com out of
thinking as obscure as the rest of its logic.
"Bearing zero two by fourteen."
Askew for them. That meant nothing. Knnn ships obeyed different laws.
"Stand by that cycle," she said, and listened for Haral's acknowledgment. "Take
it twice. We're getting out of here."
Vanes cycled in, a brief, stomach-wrenching lurch to a higher energy state.
Nausea threatened. Instruments recycled with a flurry of lights, recalibrating.
She checked the nav fix on Urtur.
"Knnn no change," Chur said.
Second pulse.
"Helm to one." Controls flashed live under her hands as Haral handed it over.
They were up to V, outbound. "Stand by jump. Fix on that knnn to the last
gods-rotted second."
Knnn had policy, somewhere in their moves. Black hair-snarls animate on long
thin legs, they built good ships -- far better ships than oxy-breathers could
survive, unless things also went on in them that played games with stress.
Nothing could talk to knnn but the leathery, serpentine tc'a, and tc'a brains
were manifold matrices.
Nothing could reason with knnn but tc'a. Time was, knnn took anything they
liked, stripped ships in midcourse, raided the earliest stations: so stsho said.
It was before the hani came. Tc'a got through the concept of trade -- at least
so knnn left something in their forays. Now they darted manic-fast into
methane-breather sectors, deposited some object, which might be anything, and
skittered off again with whatever they wanted -- which might, again, be
anything.
Tc'a coped. Chi did, one supposed; but chi, looking like a collection of yellow,
rapid-moving sticks, were crazier than knnn. And tc'a themselves were hazy on
trade-concepts. Gods knew how they ran their worlds. No outsider did.
"Mark to jump: five minutes."
"How's that knnn?"
"Still-- It just cycled, captain."
"I want better news. That's four and counting."
"Continuing to cycle. That's into our lag-time--" Meaning that in the lag of
lightspeed information the knnn might be doing other things.
"Rot the book." She shoved the jump cycle in.
--dropped
--seatfirst--
--topside down--
--rightside up
--back again in here and now, and the stomach still wanting to turn itself
inside out--
There was that wretched halfway-there, while senses swam, fingers took an hour
clenching on controls, instruments underwent a slow ripple of lights that took a
subjective day arriving at nothing special at all --
Solidity then, with one focus, sharp-edged and dreadful as the soft
uncertainties before, with endless fascination in the angles of counters, the
colors, the textures. A mind could get lost in the endless detail of a
counter-edge.
Pyanfar swallowed against the dry mouth and copper taste that came with
compressed time, flexed hands that had not flexed for three-odd weeks local. The
chronometers showed a dubious 3.2 days. The body reacted: would shed hair and
old skin within the hour as if entropy had hit, not quite three days' worth, but
some: and Tully's drugs would wear off, while the bowels and kidneys had other,
later consequences, and blood sugar went through loops and dives, obscuring
sense and hazing senses and doing things to the stomach.
Beep went controls.
She shoved the Dump down hard.
Second phasing in and out of hyperspace, bleeding off velocity in the process.
Third.
Her stomach heaved. She held her jaw clenched. The copper taste was worse.
Beep.
"That's Urtur beacon confirmed," Haral read off. "Heading zero, nine, two."
Automatic alarms went off in her skull, memories she had forced there weeks ago.
"Geran! 'ware of kif. Do we have company?"
"Checking."
Three subjective days since she had done out-bound at Meetpoint and she felt the
ache in her shoulders. "Khym. You all right?"
An incoherent answer; he sounded alive.
"Got Urtur beacon," Haral said. "Tirun. Sort it."
"Aye." That was Urtur beacon information coming in, constant-send, giving
incoming ships the exact position of objects insystem so far as known. Course
assignment would come, as soon as bounce-back time had delivered their presence
to Urtur's robot outrange beacon and its automated systems computed them a lane.
"Advise Beacon," Pyanfar said, "that we're through-traffic. Get your star-fix."
Her hands shook. Crew would be in no better state. She wanted a drink, imagined
floods of liquid, iced, deluges of flavors. Even tepid. Brackish. Anything.
"Fix on Kirdu," Haral said. "Affirmative. Laying course for Maing Tol via Kita
Point."
"Message sent," Hilfy said.
"How long to station signal?"
"About two hours," Tirun said. "That's 2.31. Beacon doesn't show any ship in the
range. It's not picking us up."
"Beacon signal," Hilfy said. "Aunt -- We're getting a code-call off beacon.
We've got a message waiting. Stand by."
"Huh." A cold feeling settled to Pyanfar's stomach. "Put it through on one." The
beacon robot had output something triggered by The Pride's automatic ID, like a
tripline. They came into system, beacon affirmed their identity and spat out
what it held memory-stored for them. Expensive mail. Very.
And the robot scan was still not showing them added to image of Urtur system. It
was not direct scan-image. It was computer-generated; and the computer failed to
put their existence on the screen.
"We've got an error," Haral said. "Bastard beacon's giving us Kshshti heading,
wants us to take starfix on Maing Tol. Put that lane request through again,
Hilfy. It's gone crazy."
"Hold that." Pyanfar stared at the message coming up on her number one screen.
She keyed the Print on: it hummed and spat out hardcopy into the documents bin.
Strings and strings of codes. More codes. Theirs . . . Ana Ismehanan-min, it
said, to good friend. Advise you got bad trouble Kita Point. Beacon give you now
new heading. I fix with Urtur authority, number one good.
Go Kshshti route. Know got close kif, but Kita got too many kif. Mahen ship, kif
ship, got two hand number ship. Mahen ship not got be everywhere too quick.
Sorry this trouble.
You one-jump Kshshti number one fine, no trouble, no stop middle of dark like
Kita. You reach Kshshti you give authorization code *Hasano-ma*.
You do good; Know you number one quick thinker. Kif not catch.
"You egg-sucking bastard!" The restraint held her seated and half cut off her
wind. She took a clawed swipe at the tray and slammed the printout onto the
clearspace of the panel; but the screen kept on feeding codes and the printer
kept on going in idiot persistence.
"Message from beacon," Hilfy said, carefully unperturbed. "Blinker alarm advises
us acknowledge and accept new heading."
She cut the screen output. The printer, undefeated, hummed and spat out yet
another sheet.
Second message. More codes. Urtur station advise you course change big urgent.
You not be register on system scan. Beacon blank you image give you cover. Go
quick.
"Beacon's not malfunctioning," she muttered. "It means it. That bastard
Goldtooth set something up with Urtur. They're routing us to Kshshti."
"Kshshti's half kif," Geran protested. "We go in there--"
"It's a one-jump. He's right in that, if Kita's blocked. At least we won't be
out in the dark nowhere with the kif . . . Call up Records: what's Kshshti got
for muscle?"
"Searching," Chur said. ". . . .Got two hunter-ships assigned from Maing Tol;
stats show ten percent stsho calls, sixteen t'ca-chi, thirty-two kif, fifty-one
mahendo'sat-I don't get any assurance on those hunter-ships being there. Based
there, it says."
"Fine." She gnawed at her mustaches and twitched her ears while the beacon went
into its Acknowledge-comply routine and com flashed warning lights. Tick-tick.
Tick. Tick-tick-tick. Haos was still possible. So was Kura. The stsho. The han.
"We go with it. Don't see what else to do. Beacon's going to blow a circuit
otherwise."
"We're pretty deep in the well," Haral said, understated caution. The star had
them firmly now: vector shift meant total dump. Meant a rough reacquisition,
fighting to get more V back than a star wanted to give them.
"Got no choice, have we? Advise Tully. Can't wait around."
Hilfy relayed. "Tully's coherent. He says go."
"Set it," Pyanfar said, and raked the last printout from the bin.
And stared. It was not the comp readout she had expected. That was on the bottom
of the tray. Another beacon-sending had come in, autoed into the printout bin.
No codes this time. Perfect hani.
Hani ship The Pride of Chanur: avoid Kita. Akkhtimakt has established watchers
there. You will not come alive through that space.
Be no fool.
A shiver went over her skin.
"Hilfy."
"Aunt?"
"You read that number-three message?"
A silence. Hilfy searched her bin.
"Who sent that?" Hilfry wondered, quiet and hoarse.
"Someone fast," she said.
"Brace for dump," Haral said.
The vanes cycled in, a dizzying pulse half-forming their hyperspace bubble, a
ripple like vision through oil.
It let them go and Haral began their realspace course-change then, a long
sickening hammering of correcting directionals and mains. G hauled at an already
outraged gut.
"Got the Maing Tol fix," Haral said. And a long, long while later, when the
engines reached null-V and kept burning: "We just passed null."
And later, as bodies ached in one long misery: "Closing on mark."
"Go when ready," Pyanfar said. Urtur's dust had not hit the hull yet, but the
place always sent the wind up her back.
Blanked off station scan, for the gods' sake. A ship hurtling dark and
unreported through Urtur system with Urtur Station's collusion, a risk to other
ships--
Fearing what? Kif insystem?
"Stand by the pulse." Haral's voice cracked with fatigue.
"Want me to take it?"
"I've got it set. Stand by."
Another pulse, another queasy moment neither here nor there. There was the
bloody smear of a red light on the board.
"Vane two red," Pyanfar muttered. "Stop it there."
"We're a shade off V."
"What blew?" (Khym, weakly.) "There something wrong?"
"Regulator in the vane column," Pyanfar said, blinking it all into focus again.
Her bones ached. "Ship doesn't like all this change of mind. Tirun, I want an
interrupt check on that vane."
"Right." Tirun's voice shook with exhaustion. No complaints. "Sure like to know
why it didn't cut off."
"Solve it from inside."
"Urtur's no gods-rotted place for a walk."
"We in trouble?" Khym asked.
"Just got a little mechanical problem. Still got one backup left on that system.
Regulator ought to have shut the vane down short of blowing what blew. I think
our problem's there. That's an in-hull problem. No big trouble." But it was
trouble. Something made it blow. And Kshshti was a long, long one-jump. Big
stress. If that vane went-- "What's our transit time?"
"Got--" Haral said, "--48.4 hours to next jump."
"We'll find the glitch by then." She powered the chair back, needing room to
breathe. Another quarter turn of the chair and she saw Khym sitting there, head
leaned back against the cushion, breathing in slow, careful intakes, looking her
way with a bleak curiosity. He had not been sick. Was not. Was plainly
determined not to be.
Holding it, she guessed.
"Tully wants to come topside," Chur said.
"Fine." She was numb, with a certain insulation between herself and calamities
back at Meetpoint, and the one back there on their tail. She looked aside as all
number-four screens acquired an image from The Pride's outside eyes, habit when
they arrived at a place. Haral had done that, reflex or a statement: no panic.
Just routine operations.
Urtur was spectacle enough, to be sure, one great fried egg of a star and system
magnified in their pickup, a yellow star for a yolk that glowed hellishly in the
flattened disk of dust that surrounded it. Planets swept dark orbits in the
disk, accreted rings of their own. Urtur's worlds were mostly gas giants, with a
few well-cratered smaller planets buried in the muck.
No place for a walk indeed. Particles would hole even a hardsuit in short order.
Mahendo'sat owned Urtur system, doing mahen things like poking about in the dust
hunting clues to why Urtur was like it was -- for pure curiosity, which was why
mahendo'sat did a great many peculiar things. But at the same time and
practically, they maintained a case for the methane-breathers, who thought
methane-dominant Elaji a fine fair place, with its clouds aglow with the
constant flicker of lightnings and meteors making streaks by the minute in an
atmosphere already greenhoused by previous impacts. Oxy-breathers got photos of
the surface. Tc'a revelled in it, and mined rare metals, and had industry in
that hell.
Knnn too.
And where, she wondered, considering that deficient scan image, was their own
private knnn?
Blocked off scan the same as they, and out of range of their own pickup?
145
C. /. Chenyh
Gone, perhaps. Off their track entirely.
She did not trust that. Not finding the knnn simply meant they had not found it.
The Pride did a minor course correction, a gentle push at her left. For any ship
going crosswise to the dust circulation, Urtur transit was a matter of finding
the most useful hole in the debris and presenting as little as possible of the
vane surface to the particles during ecliptic transit.
They had damage enough to contend with, gods knew.
"Get her set and we go auto for a while. You can do those checks after we get
some food in you, Tirun. -- Who's on galley?"
"Me," said Hilfy.
"Get on it." And not without thought: "Crew-youngest always gets the extra duty.
You help her, Khym."
Khym just stared at her from the oblique, a desperate, half-drowned stare. Hilfy
turned her chair, released her restraints and levered herself out of it. Khym
moved then, got up like a drunk and held onto the chairback for a moment.
Work, indeed work.
And he followed Hilfy without a backward look, by the gods, the ex-lord of Mahn
on galley duty, no complaints. She drew a long slow breath and remembered youth,
Mahn, its fields, the house with the spring.
And a tired elder hani who tried to begin all over. At bottom. In a dimension he
hardly understood.
"Going to be one lot of mad shippers," Tirun muttered. "Remember that rush order
from that factor?"
"Bet Ayhar nabs it," Chur said.
Pyanfar released her restraints and got to her feet. Her joints ached and there
was fire down her back.
She stopped in midstretch. Tully was there in the doorway, ghostlike silent in
the white noise of The Pride's working. He rested one arm on the doorframe, and
stood there, barefoot, in simple crewwoman's breeches and nothing else, looking
wan and cold. No more friend, no more Py-anfar. Just that bruised, cornered look
that wondered if anyone had time for him.
"I know," she said. "We get you fed."
"Safe?" he asked. He knew ships, enough to feel The Pride faltering-and himself
alone and knowing all too much. "Ship--" He made a helpless motion. "Break?"
"Got it under control," she said. "Fine. Safe, all fine."
The pale eyes flickered.
"Fix soon," she said. Fear looked back at her, habitual and patient. She
beckoned him and he left the door and walked all the way inside. Mobile blue
eyes flicked this way and that, scanning monitors for what they could read,
quick and furtive move. They centered on her again.
"Got talk." He had gotten a little hani. She grew accustomed to his slurring
speech. The translator spat useless static. "Got talk, please got talk."
"Maybe it's time we do." A great uneasiness came over her, things out of joint.
Males and tempers and their old friend Tully, whose alien face had that strange,
distracted movement of the eyes. Fear of them as well as well as kif? And
suspicious reprobate that she was: Lies, Tully? Or plain self-interest from the
start?
"Sure," she said. She stank, reeked; she thought instinctively of baths, of
males and quarrels and a thousand lunatic distracted things like impacts at this
speed, and the vane that showed intact in the image on Tirun's screens (but it
was not, inside, and that could be bad news indeed.) Urtur. Docking with,
likely, kif about. And not a hope of help. Urtur had no muscle adequate to fend
off anything. Poor human fool, we could lose us all here, don't you know? They'd
move in, take what they liked, you foremost-- "Gome on," she said to the crew at
large, who were all tremble-handed at their work. "Break it off. We eat, get
some sleep." She caught Tully by the arm. "You come and tell me, huh?"
Chapter Six
The dust whispered on the hull like distant static, above the other
sounds-abrading away, Pyanfar reckoned; but their vanes were canted edge-on to
it, the observation dome and lenses were shielded, and that was the best that
they could do. So The Pride exited this fringe of Urtur with a little polish on
her hull. They made what speed they could through the muck at system-edge.
Meanwhile--
Meanwhile they crammed shoulder to shoulder into the galley. They had already
extended their table with a fold-out and a let-down bench end when na Khym
became permanent. Now they squeezed a few inches each and got Tully in, a
company of seven now, unlikely tablefellows. But Tully was still wobbly in his
moves, his hands shaking as he gulped cup after cup of carbohydrate-laced gfi
and nibbled at this and that; while Khym -- Khym ate, plenty, for one who had
been wobbly-sick half an hour ago. Pyanfar shot glances his way -- misgiving (he
bade fair to make himself sick) and halfway pleased (he had lasted the rough
ride, by the gods, and gone white-nosed as he was to galley duty, and was on
incredibly good behavior.) There might not have been another male at table for
all the attention Khym paid between his plate and the rotating center-section
with the serving-trays.
There was silence at table, mostly -- a little muttered discourse as Tirun and
Chur and Haral brought their vane-problem to table with them, and worried it
like a bone. A little "have this," and "try that," from Hilfy who tried to slip
a little more substance under Tully's ribs.
No harrying, no pressure -- take it slow, she thought. And: Keep him calm, keep
everything low-key . . . the while she watched him relax at last, their old
friend, old comrade. It was as if he had -- finally -- come back to them the way
he had been, easier and finally letting go -- Time then to talk of things, when
he might tell them the truth. Perhaps they had cornered him, pushed him too
much, assured him too little. Perhaps he felt the panic in the air and only now
felt easy. Perhaps now there would be truth.
"Your House send you?" Khym said suddenly, looking straight Tully's way, and
sent her heart lurching past a beat.
Tully blinked that into slow non-focus. "Send?" the translator queried,
flat-voiced . . . O gods, trust indeed, wide-eyed innocence. "Send me?"
"I don't know that they have Houses," Pyanfar said, and found her fingers flexed
and the claws out. Khym tried the situation. She knew him. And she knew Tully.
Of a sudden the silence round the table was absolute. She wanted to stop it, to
shut it off, and there was no way, no way with Khym in bland, smooth
attack-mode. Hunting, gods rot him. Pushing for reaction, the crew's and hers.
"Don't use big words. Translator can't handle them."
"House isn't a big word."
"Stick to ship-things. Technical stuff. You don't know how it comes out the
other side."
"Say again," Tully said.
"I asked who sent you."
"# # send me."
"See?" said Pyanfar. "You get a word it won't make sense."
"Name home," Tully said. "Sun. Also call Sol. Planet name Earth. Send me "
"He does talk."
"So," Pyanfar said. Her ears pricked up despite herself. "Sun, is it?"
"Where are we?" Tully asked. "Ur-tur?"
"Urtur. Yes."
He drew a great breath. "Go Maing Tol."
"Seems so. By way of Kshshti. You know that name?"
"Know." He moved his plate aside a handspan and touched his strange, thin
fingers to the table surface. "Meetpoint -- Urtur -- Kshshti -- Maing Tol."
"Huh." He had never known much of the Compact stars. Not from them. "Goldtooth
teach?"
"Mahe name Ino. Ship name Ijir."
"Before Goldtooth got you, huh? How'd you find Goldtooth?"
He looked worried. Or the translator scrambled it. "Go Goldtooth, yes."
"You with him long?"
"#?"
"Were you long time in Goldtooth's ship?"
Perhaps it was the tone of her voice. His eyes met hers and dived aside after
one frozen instant, reestablishing contact perforce.
"Where did you meet Goldtooth?"
"Ino find him."
It did not satisfy her. She sat and stared, forgetting the bite on her fork, not
forgetting Khym at her elbow. No fight; don't pick a fight, no trouble while
Khym's in it. The strictures crawled up and down her nerves.
"You come how long ago?" Geran asked.
"Don't know," he said, glancing that way. "Long time."
"Days?"
"Lot days."
He could be more precise. He knew the translator's limits. Knew how to
manipulate it better than he did. He picked up the cup and drank, covering the
silence.
Perhaps the rest of the crew picked up the undertones. She thought so. There was
not a move at table. Only Tully.
Their old friend.
She reached slowly into the depths of her pocket, hooked the small, thin ring
with a claw and laid it precisely on the tabletop. Click.
His face went a shade further toward stsho pallor, and then he reached for it
and took it up in his flat-nailed fingers, examining the inside band. His eyes
lifted, that startling blue, wide and dreadful.
"Where find?" he asked. "Where find, Pyanfar?"
"Whose?" She knew pain when she saw it and suddenly wished the ring back in her
pocket and them less public than this. A kifish gift. She was a fool to have
suspected anything but misery in it, a double fool; and having started it there
was no way to go but straight ahead.
"Mahe got?" he asked. "Goldtooth?"
"Kif gave it to me," she said, and watched a tremor come into his mouth and
stop, his face go paler still if it were possible. "Friend of yours, Tully?"
"What say this kif?"
"Said -- said it was a message for our cargo."
The tremor started again, harder to control. No one moved at table, no one on
left or right. For a long time that lasted, with the dust rattling on the hull,
the rumble of the rotation, the distant whisper of air in the duct above their
heads. Water spilled from Tully's eyes and ran down into his beard.
"Friend, huh?" She coughed in self-disgust and shoved her plate back, creating a
stir and a little healthy living noise. Scowled at the crew. "Want to get that
vane fixed?"
"Where get?" Tully asked before anyone could move.
"Kif named Sikkukkut. Ship named Harukk. Who did it belong to, huh?"
His mouth made a sudden straight line, white-edged, as he looked down and put
the ring on.
It was too small. He forced it. "Need #," he murmured, seeming to have nothing
to do with them or here or now.
"This kif," she said, slipping the words past while the shock was fresh. "This
kif was at Meetpoint, Tully. He knew you'd come to us from Goldtooth. He knew
our way ahead was blocked. What more he knew I have no idea. Do you want to tell
us, Tully? Whose is it?"
The blue eyes burned. "Friend," he said. "Belong friend stay Ijir."
She let go a breath and shot a look past a row of puzzled hani faces. "So
Goldtooth hedged his bet, huh? You come to us. Your companions go somewhere
else. Where?"
"Kif got. Kif got # Ijir."
"Then the kif know a gods-rotted lot more than you've told us. What do they
know, Tully? What are you up to, your hu-man-i-ty?"
"They ask help."
"How much help? Tully-what are you doing here?"
"Kif. Kif."
"What's going on?" Khym asked from her left. "What's he talking about -- kif?"
"Later," she said, and heard the breath gust through Khym's nostrils. "Tully.
Tell me what's in that paper. You tell me, hear."
"You got take to Maing Tol."
"Tully. Gratitude mean anything to you? I saved your mangy hide, Tully, more
times than I ought."
He gave back against the seat. The eyes set again on hers with that tragic look
she hated. "Need you," he said in hani words, a strange, mangled sound that
confused the translator to static. "Friend, Pyanfar."
"I ask him," Khym rumbled.
"No," she said sharply, and felt an acid rush in her gut, raw panic at the
potential in that. She brought her clenched hand down on the table and rattled
dishes. Tully flinched, and she glared. "Tully, You talk to me, gods rot you.
You tell me what those papers are."
"Ask hani come fight ship take human."
"Make sense."
"Want make trade hani-mahe."
"Truth?"
"Truth."
The eyes pleaded for belief. It did nothing for the feeling in her gut. Wrong,
it said. Wrong, wrong, wrong. For kif trouble alone the mahe might have asked
the han direct. Trade -- was the lure, and there was something in the trees.
She shifted her eyes past his shoulder to Haral, wise, scar-nosed Haral. Haral's
ears canted back and her mustache drew down with the intimation of something
odorous.
But there was nothing profitable in pushing Tully. Trust. They had a little of
it. There had been a time he had staved off kif for months, led his
interrogators in circles despite torture, despite the murder of companions.
Tully had held out. More, he had escaped, off a kifish ship. That was no fool.
And no one to be pushed.
"Vane," she said with ulterior motives. "Go."
"Aye." Haral moved, shoved Chur's shoulder. Hilfy and Geran shifted to clear the
seats and Tully got up.
"Get the galley cleared," Pyanfar said- "Tully. You just became juniormost. Help
Hilfy with the galley. Khym -- you fetch and carry on the bridge. Whoever needs
it."
"I want to talk to you," Khym said, unbudged.
"No time to talk." She turned her head and met his scowl with her own as he
stayed put on the bench, still blocking her way out. "Look, Khym, we've got a
vane in partial failure. One of us may have to take a walk after it yet. You got
a question that tops it?"
His ears went down in dismay.
"Out," she said.
"We could go to Kura, couldn't we?"
"No. We can't. Can't shift course again this side of Urtur -- we're in the dust;
we've got a vane down . . . .The last course change gods-rotted near killed us,
you understand that? I haven't got time to discuss it." She shoved and he moved.
She got up and looked back at him, at Hilfy and Tully who were gathering dishes
at furious speed. But Khym lingered, a towering hurt. She gathered up her
patience, took him by the arm, walked him to the privacy of the bridgeward
corridor. "Look, Khym -- we've got troubles."
"Somehow," he said, "I figured that."
"Kshshti's mahen-held," she said. "Barely. If the kif have Kita watched they've
likely got something in at Kshshti. But there's help there or the mahendo'sat
wouldn't send us that direction."
"You trust what they say?"
She looked behind him, where one stark-pale human hastened to hand dishes off
the table and close doors.
"I don't know," she said. "Go."
"You don't put me off, Py."
She gave him one long burning look.
"Chanur property," he said. "I do forget."
"What do you want, Khym? I'll tell you what I want. I want that gods-rotted vane
fixed. I want us out of here. Are you helping?"
He drew a long, long breath and cast a look over his shoulder in Tully's
direction. "Pet?"
"Shut it up. Right there."
The ears that had half-lifted sank again. "All right. That was low. But for the
gods' sake, Py, what have you got yourself into? You can't make deals outside
the han. They'll have your hide. That Ehrran ship-="
"Noticed that, did you?"
"Gods, Py!"
"Hush."
He coughed. Caught his breath. "Chanur property. Right."
"Did you expect different?" She jabbed him hard. It took a lot to get through a
male's skin when he had that look in his eyes. "Are they right?"
"Who's right?"
"The stsho in that bar."
His nostrils dilated, closed, dilated, and his nose went pale round the edges.
"I don't see what that has to do with it."
"Hilfy back there. You hear a question out of her?"
He looked over his shoulder, where Hilfy was closing cabinet latches, click,
slam, click, one after the other; and Tully was folding the table up. He looked
round again and his ears were flat.
"Go help Tirun," she said.
"I asked a question."
"No. You questioned, and by the gods that's different. You want Haral's rights,
you by the gods earn them."
He brushed past her and stalked off bridge-ward. And stopped, about half a dozen
paces on -- faced her, to her relief and her dismay. At least he had not
retreated to his cabin. And gods, not more argument.
He stood there. Cold, deliberate protocol.
"Help Tirun and Haral," she said. "The rest of us haven't got a deathwish. That
vane's got to be fixed."
That was the way, mention the word. Dead, dead. Death. Hit him between the ears
with it. Her stomach churned.
"Fine," he said, bowed, turned and talked off, a massive shadow against the
lights of the bridge beyond.
She spun on her own heel and walked back into the galley proper, to Tully and
Hilfy, who stood idle. "Out," she said to Hilfy, and Hilfy scrambled past her.
Footsteps pelted bridgeward.
Tully stood trapped against the cabinets, leaned there with elbows on the
counter behind him.
"All right," she said, "Tully, I want the truth."
"Maing Tol."
"I scare you, huh? Maing Tol, Maing Tol. Listen to me. You don't play stupid.
You gods-rotted well understand me. You wanted to talk. You wouldn't give me
peace of it. So talk. And keep talking."
Maybe the translator garbled that. He had that look.
"Talk, Tully. You want to be friends, by the gods you deal straight with me."
"I sit," he said, and ebbed down onto the mess table bench as if his legs would
no longer hold him.
"Truth." She came closer in his silence, leaned both hands on the table and
glared into his face. "Now, hear?"
He flinched. He smelled of fear and human sweat, like when she had held him,
when his heart had beat so hard she could feel it like hammer-strokes. She
reached out pitilessly and pinned his arm with claws out. "You risk my crew,
Tully. You risk Chanur. By the gods you don't lie to me. Where you come from,
huh?"
"Friend," he said.
"You want I rattle your brain?"
He drew several rapid breaths. "Maing Tol. Go Maing Tol."
She stared, at arm's length from his face, stared a good, long while. "You come
find me. Need, you say. Need what? You talk, now you talk, Tully. Need what?
Number one fool? Where you been, Tully?"
"Human space. Want come. Want, Pyanfar."
"So you come to the mahendo'sat."
"Mahe come human space."
"Goldtooth?"
"Name Ino. Ijir."
She drew a long, long breath. "Doublecrossing bastard." Meaning Goldtooth, mahen
trade and a towering great lie.
"Say again." Blue eyes looked at her with vast worry.
She lifted her hand from his arm and patted his face ever so gently, claws
pulled. "Keep talking. More. How did this Ijir come into the business, huh? Was
it trading in human space."
"Human ship--" He made diagrams on the tabletop. "Human. Kif. Mahe. Not good go
so- kif. Three human ship. Gone. Not see. Not come home. Try go stsho. Mahe
come-go." He drew route-pictures, mahen traders reaching human space. "Ijir
come. Say want bring human come talk mahe. Want I come. I, Tully." His mouth
twisted in a strange expression. "I small, Pyanfar. Human lot mad. They same
send me. I small. Mahe think me big. Want. Take. Human think me make trouble.
Shut up, Tully. What you know?" Another intersecting line as Ijir moved out of
human space toward the Compact. "Gold-tooth come. Lot talk, Ino, Goldtooth.
Goldtooth want talk me, not talk lot other human, other human lot mad." He drew
a great breath, looked up at her as if to see whether she understood his babble,
and there was pain in his expression.
"Politics," she said. "And protocols. Same there, huh?"
He blinked, confused.
"Go on."
"Goldtooth want talk me. Want me go Goldtooth ship. I say go find you, you
friend, good friend. Not know Goldtooth. Want help. Want you talk these mahe."
"That bastard."
Another blink of skyblue eyes.
"So," she muttered, "the mahe wanted you, huh? And set up a rendezvous. Wanted
you. Someone they could talk to. Someone who would talk, huh? What about that
paper? What's in it? Why Maing Tol?"
"I spacer." Tully's mouth trembled in that way he had when he was upset. "I
never say I #, Pyanfar."
"What about the paper, Tully? Whose is it? What's in it?"
"Ijir meet Goldtooth, he say make paper -- same paper human on Ijir got--"
"Copy the paper, you mean."
His head bobbed vehemently. "Same. Yes. Say he take me go find you, go talk
stsho, go bring paper Maing Tol, help human-" He held up the hand that bore the
ring. "Kif got them. Kif got Ijir, got paper same you got--"
"How long time?"
He shook his head. "I don't know." His look grew desperate. "I ask come hani,
ask, ask many time. Goldtooth friend? He friend, Pyanfar?"
"Good question," she said, and puzzled him.
She reached and patted his shoulder, tapped him with a clawtip. "Safe,
understand. Tell me. Why Maing Tol? And why me?"
He shivered, palpably, and reached across the table to grip her retreating hand,
ignoring the reflexive jerk of claws. "Big trouble. Lot human ship, lot go Maing
Tol soon."
"Across kif space? There's knnn out there! How many ship, huh, how many human
ships are you talking about? Three? Four? More than that?"
"Paper say -- we make stop kif come human space, take human ship. But Goldtooth
say me-- Goldtooth say-- think now maybe not kif got human ship. Maybe knnn."
"O good gods." The heart sank in her. If there had been a bench under her she
would have sat down. As it was she just stared.
"Goldtooth say message got go Maing Tol make stop mahe, make stop kif, go
fight--"
"Fight? Gods-rotted humanity can't tell knnn from kif?"
"Not."
"Well, for the gods' sake you know knnn.' Did you teJI them, did you telJ them
the difference?"
"Who I? They don't hear. Shut up, Tully. I'm small person, small, not #,
Pyanfar!"
"Gods and thunders."
"Pyanfar--"
"Lunatics!"
"Goldtooth friend?" he asked again. "I do good?"
She stared at him a long, long time and he just looked scared. Scared and on the
other side of a half-functioning translator. And the gulf of other minds.
"Goldtooth's mahendo'sat," she said flatly. "And he's got a Personage breathing
down his neck. They went to get you, friend, because they wanted trade. I'll bet
on that. And those human ships weren't getting through. Ijir's no common trader,
no way. They wanted to get you to a rendezvous -- find out what humanity's up
to. That was the game. But they found out too gods-rotted much and now
Goldtooth's scared. Scared, understand? Kif, the mahe can handle. But if knnn
have their small black feet in this -- o gods, Tully -- you lunatics."
"Got lot ship come -- lot, Pyanfar. Got fight kif, got make stop knnn."
"No one fights the knnn! Gods and thunders, you don't pick a fight with
something you can't talk to!"
Wide eyes looked back at her in distress.
"Where's Goldtooth, Tully? You know?"
A shake of an uncomprehending head.
"Huh." She shoved back from the table feeling her knees gone jellylike. And
still that blue-eyed stare was on her. Lost.
Don't go to the han, Goldtooth had said; and Beware of Goldtooth-from
Goldtooth's stsho ally--
With Vigilance in the selfsame port.
Suspicions occurred to her, vague and circular, that the han ship might have
gotten wind of the clearing of Chanur papers, of mahen money passed to stsho--
--that that ship's presence and Goldtooth's might have had connections Goldtooth
would not say . . . han/mahen consultations. Stsho like Stle sties stlen, with
slippered feet well into it. . . .
And self-interested betrayals, at more than financial depths--
Knnn. Gods, stsho the ultimate xenophobes, and knnn the ultimate reason . . .
living right next door -- living, or traveling, or whatever it was knnn did with
those ships of theirs.
Perhaps, hani had whispered, stung by stsho references to the mahendo'sat
bringing hani into space to balance kif--
--perhaps a great deal that the stsho knew came from methane-breathers. Tc'a
were likely. But had limbless serpents originated their own tech?
Or had chi, who might be parasites -- or slaves -- or pets -- to the tc'a? Not
likely.
Goldtooth had reason to run scared. And being mahe he had done a mahen thing: he
had gone for the contacts that he knew. Same as the whole mahen species had:
bring Tully. Go get him. While with trouble in the offing Goldtooth had wanted
her. Not the han. Not Ehrran. The han knew the mahendo'sat, by the gods: it was
why the law existed against taking foreign hire. Mahendo'sat went for Personage.
For the Known Quantity. They set up powers. Tore them down. Tied hani rules in
knots and brought down powers by ignoring them in crises.
Here's unlimited credit-friend. Tell us what you know. Same as they worked on
humans.
Send for Tully.
Gods, they'd drained him dry. Even kif had failed at that.
(I do good? Tully asked. With that blue-flower stare.)
They had her by the beard, that was sure. Had her, and maybe Stle stles stlen
himself.
Until humanity launched ships at the Compact, and knnn objected.
"Trouble?" Tully asked.
She lifted her ears, turned on him the blandest of looks. "We'll fix it. Just go
back to your quarters, huh?"
"I spacer. I work." He patted his pocket. "Got paper, Py-an-far."
He did. That was truth. Citizen of the Compact, licensed spacer. More mahen
maneuverings. He could not handle controls. He needed a pick to reach the
buttons and he was illiterate in hani.
So they locked him up below and shoved him this way and that. He had looked for
better from them. Gods knew he must have looked for better.
"Na Khym's aboard," she said, feeling the flush all the way to her ears. "Male,
Tully."
"Friend."
The flush went hotter. "As long as you aren't in the same room, fine. Go where
you like. Just stay out of his way. Males are different. Don't argue with him.
Don't talk to him if you can avoid it. Just duck your head and for godssakes
keep your hands off him and us."
Blankest confusion.
"Hear?"
"Yes," he said.
"Get." She turned him loose and watched him go for the bridge.
She waited for the explosion -- realized she was waiting, claws flexed, and drew
them in. There was the dust-whisper, high-pitched with their velocity, reminding
her of movement, of The Pride's hurtling toward a jump she had to make now.
No way out but that.
The bridge lights were still on, with all of them snatching sleep where they
could, going back to quarters for rotating breaks and coming back to the
paper-snowed number-two counter, while the dust whispered and the occasional
impact of larger fragments hit the hull. ("We'll shine like a new spoon when we
get through this," Hilfy had said early on; "We'll be cratered like Gaohn,"
Tirun had replied, which they were not yet.) The dust screamed now and again,
V-differential. Now and again The Pride's particle-sensors and automated systems
sent the trim jets into action, little instabilities in G which put a stagger
into a walk down a corridor. Now and again The Pride's scan showed her something
major and the ship moved to take care of it.
But hani work went on too. And human: a section of the comp still had the
working light on that meant Tully was still at it, doing what he could do --
working away with linguistics from his terminal in his quarters. He hunted
words. Equivalencies. Fought the translator into fewer gaps and spits. Learned
hani. That was what he did, far into the hours.
And Khym, shambling red-eyed and shivering from out the corridor-errand to the
so-called heated hold: "Got the stores moved down," he said, and cast a worried
eye over boards he could not read, at backs turned to him and work still
underway. "Go on to bed," Pyanfar said. "Hot bath. You've done all you can."
"We're still in trouble, aren't we?"
"We're working on it. Go. Go on. Need you later. Get some sleep."
He went, silent, with one backward, worried glance.
She sighed. Heard other sighs from crew, rubbed her aching eyes and felt a
twinge of shame.
"Suppose he secured that?" Tirun wondered.
"He'll remember." But there were his habits in galley -- dishes left, a cabinet
latch undone. She walked over and keyed in security check. All doors showed
closed and a sense of panic still gnawed at her.
On the monitors the numbers still rolled up bleak information. Constant
operation. No matter what they tried. They went deeper into the dust, into the
well, and station information showed four kif docked, one loose and outward
bound, two mahen freighters and six tc'a miner/processors.
Bad odds.
"Gods rot." From Haral.
Another theory failed.
"Go on break," she muttered, back on the bridge the third time, finding Tirun
still in the huddle of three heads round the console: Hilfy had changed with
Chur; and Haral was back after shift with Geran; while she had stood two
straight herself. "Gods rot it, Tirun, didn't I tell you get?"
"Sorry, captain." Tirun's voice was hoarse, and she never looked up from the
papers and the moving stylus. "Got this one more idea."
She subsided onto the counter edge, steadied herself through another of The
Pride's attitude corrections. She gnawed at her mustaches and waited, wiped her
eyes. The stylus scratched away on the paper.
"There's the YR89," Haral said, putting out a hand to point. "If it went--"
"Huuuh." The snarl was hoarse and vexed and Haral got the hand out of Tirun's
way. Fast. Scratch-scratch went the stylus.
More silence. The dustscream on the hull grew louder. The Pride corrected. There
was a resounding impact.
"Gods rot!" (Hilfy.) Ears went down in embarrassment. She ducked her chin back
to her arm on the counter-edge and tried to pretend former silence.
Tirun shoved a strip under the autoreader. The slot took it. Lights rippled as
if nothing at all were wrong. Tirun's shoulders slumped.
"Anything left untried?" Pyanfar asked.
"Nothing," Haral said quietly.
"It's a ghosty thing," Tirun said. Her voice cracked. Her ears flagged. "I can't
turn it up."
"Stress-produced?"
"Think so. Always possible the unit was rotten. Remember that fade at Kirdu."
Pyanfar heaved a breath and stared at Tirun, reading that grudging mistrust of
an unclean system. "We've still got one backup," she said.
"We'll be down to none at Kshshti. Enough for braking. If we're lucky."
Pyanfar thought about it. Thought through the whole vane system. "Back to the
regulator," she said.
"You want to replace that Y unit?"
A long, long worming up the vane column, with The Pride yawing and pitching
under power. A long, dark solo job fishing a breaker out of the linkages, where
the system was already in failure. From inside-because the particles would strip
a suit.
"No. I want all of us to see Kshshti, thanks." She drew a deep breath. "We put
in for repair when we get there, that's all."
Noses drew down. Ears sank.
"Well, what else can we do?"
"I'd try the column," Hilfy said.
"Hero's a short-term job, kid." And to Haral: "We go on schedule."
"If it would get us--" Hilfry said.
"I'd gods-rotted put Chur up that thing if it'd work: at Jeast she'd know the
system."
Ears sank; shoulders slumped.
"If someone gets killed up there," Tirun muttered, "gods-rotted lot of trouble
getting you out of the works. Might fry the system along with you. Captain's
right the first time."
"Sure takes out the Kura option," Haral said.
"Huh," Pyanfar said. "Isn't an option."
"There's Urtur."
"There's Urtur." She let go a long, long breath and thought about it as she had
thought about it the last ten hours. Spend days on Urtur. With five kif, two
mahendo'sat freighters and six tc'a who were apt to do anything. Or nothing,
while the kif blew them apart or boarded.
"The mahendo'sat," she said, "want us at Kshshti. Goldtooth does. You looked at
that scan image? You want to bet Sikkukkut's not passed the word along?"
"Kif got the dice," Haral said. "No bets. You get anything out of Tully to tell
us what this is?"
Pyanfar slumped against the cabinet back and stared at Haral. "Big. Real big.
You want to hear it? Mahendo'sat tried to get humankind in the back door. Humans
lost some ships. I think this Ijir's a hunter-ship. It went in and got Tully --
typical mahen stunt. They wanted to figure out what was going on and they wanted
Tully in their hands. He'd talk. He'd trust them. He'd tell them anything they
asked."
"O good gods," Hilfy murmured.
"That's not the end of it, niece. Humanity wanted to send their real authorities
to the mahendo'sat, I'm guessing, because they had trouble. Mahendo'sat wanted
Tully, because they have trouble. Here it gets complicated. I think this whole
thing's touched off the knnn." No one moved. Eyes dilated to thinnest amber
rings. "I think," Pyanfar said, patiently, quietly, "humans failed a promised
trade, mahendo'sat investigated, sent a ship -- humans from their side blame the
kif, and Tully's not high up enough that humanity would've told him much beyond
that. He couldn't know the knnn angle. So the mahendo'sat got Tully and
rendezvous'd with Goldtooth at some point beyond Tvk, I'm guessing. For
questions. Gods know. Tully said the delegation was vexed that Goldtooth
wouldn't talk to them; just to him. And Goldtooth took him aboard alone, Ijir
went for Maing Tol, Goldtooth went gods know where, and meanwhile our papers
miraculously got cleared, when stsho had refused us for months, and Goldtooth
and we together ended up at Meetpoint."
"So did the han," Hilfy said, and Pyanfar looked her way and blinked. The
thought leapt to her mind too, two points connecting.
"Stle stles stlen."
"The stationmaster?" Haral asked, hoarse and fatigued, but her ears pricked
sharp.
"Might well be. The han called for consultation; our papers bought back by one
side or the other -- Someone wanted us in this. Feels like mahendo'sat. Feels
like Goldtooth himself. We're his Known Quantity. But so's Stle stles stlen.
Theoretically. I wouldn't lay odds on anything right now. Someone got things
moving. Gods know the stsho took our money to clear those papers, but maybe they
took everyone's, who knows?"
"Gods-rotted situation," Haral muttered.
"Twice over if Ehrran's in it," Tirun said.
"Where's Goldtooth headed?" Hilfy asked.
"I asked Tully that. He doesn't know. He says. Likely he doesn't."
"He came through here," Haral said. "Kura? Kita? -- Kshshti-bound?"
"We think he came through here," Tirun said. Her voice cracked. "I'd not lay
odds anything's right-side up with that son."
"Bait-and-switch," Pyanfar said. "Gods-rotted mahe's slippery as a kif. No, I
don't swear that message wasn't put in before he got to Meet-point. Or by some
outbound agent. Alarm's being rung down from Meetpoint to Urtur to Kshshti,
that's what, and we may just think we're the wavefront."
"That knnn at Meetpoint--" Tirun said. "Not forgetting that."
"We can't do anything about it. Except get out of here."
"And stay in one piece," Haral muttered. "Kshshti's a long jump."
"We can make it. Even if we blow that vane. Distance may blow it, but it'll help
us too: we'll come in with marginal V. We can stop, at worst. At best, it wasn't
the Y unit and the vane will hold all the way."
"It may and it may not," Tirun said. "If it's that. One of those goes ghosty,
gods, you don't know whether you've got it or not. Ever. It could hold to
Kshshti and we could lose it at Maing Tol when we've got higher V."
"One thing I want you to do. Put that whole vane over to backup from the board
up. In case we've got a ghost in another unit. Let's just clear all the original
systems. Can you do that in four hours?"
"Can," Tirun said.
"Not you. You get some sleep."
"I'll get it," Haral said.
"We give up that Y-unit to third redundancy?" Tirun asked. "Could have damaged
it when that regulator went backup. If that's sour it'll sure take that linkage
out."
She thought about it. Thought about going no-backup-at-all, which was how
desperate it was.
"No," she said. "I'll dice with the number two. What we've got aboard-if nothing
else-we can't risk on that kind of throw. It'll get us there with something
left. That's all we dare try."
"What have we got aboard?" Tirun asked.
"Message from humanity to Maing Tol and Iji. Translator. Message from Goldtooth
to his Personage. Gods know what that is. About the knnn -- most likely." She
drew a deep breath and considered the chance it involved the hem. Alliances.
Doublecrosses. "All systems to number two and we jump to Kshshti on schedule.
Tell Chur and Geran what we're doing when they come on duty."
"Not the menfolk?"
"Gods, don't worry them. Tell them we fixed it all."
"What--" Hilfy asked ever so quietly, "what about Tully if we go lame at
Kshshti? We'll be stuck at dock. Gods know the kif--"
"What we do, imp -- We get ourselves to Kshshti and whatever happens, by the
gods, we put him in mahen hands. Let them worry about him. Hear? They've got two
hunter-ships to their account. Let them take it." She stood up again. "Get some
rest. All of you this time."
"Aye," Tirun murmured in what of a voice she had left. Hilfy stared at her
open-mouthed.
"Nothing else to do," Pyanfar said to her. "Nothing else. He's worth too much to
take chances with. That message is. Understand? We've had it. That vane's got
us."
"We go in like this we could be down a week!"
"So we take our damage. We can cover the bill. We've got that. We're done, imp.
Finished."
"I could make it," Hilfy said, "up that column and we'd have that unit
replaced."
"Wrong. Chur would have to do it. She's smallest. And she's not fool enough."
There was silence but for that. That and the dust.
She got up and walked away, staggered a little as she reached the corridor and
The Pride corrected course again.
She had another, chilling thought and turned, pointed at Haral. "No way this kid
tries it. You sit on her. Someone goes up that column I'll space her. Hear?"
"Aye," Haral said.
No one followed her. Presumably they were clearing up the paper. Closing down.
Her eyes blurred with exhaustion and she refrained from rubbing at them as she
passed Khym's cabin.
She thought of going to him. She had not -- not since Hoas. It was not her time;
had not been, then. Such niceties went by the board with them as they had in her
world-visits. But sleep would not come easy with the dust, the small shifts of G
that went on constantly: and he might be asleep; and there would be questions if
she waked him.
Did you fix it, Py?
She opened her own door and walked in, sat down at the desk and methodically
cleared the clutter of her own work away.
Course-plottings. Calculations every way she could make them in hopes of getting
another dump-and-turn that would turn them off toward Kura and hani space,
without breaking them down at Urtur and stranding themselves here with the kif.
None were feasible. And if they were -- if they were, knnn notice fell on hani
thereafter.
Goldtooth, you mahen bastard. Seeing to the safety of his own, that was sure.
So she handed the package back again: Here, fool mahe, you take it. Good luck.
Run fast.
And Tully--
She rested her head against her hands. Gods, gods, gods.
Knnn.
And the failsafe that was Ijir, whatever else it had been, with its humanity
aboard, and just gone backup.
Kif had it, gods help them. Kif would take them apart, mahe, humans, everyone.
Tully knew, who had spent time in kifish hands, who had gone to hani for help
because he heard them laugh once, across Meetpoint docks.
Gods rot Sikkukkut and all kifish gifts.
They were out of it, that was all. Whatever gain or loss there was yet to be
made, The Pride had gone her limit. So they should be glad to be out of it. A
vane down. They could not jump The Pride again. They rolled the dice for
Kshshti. That was gambling all their lives. At Maing Tol the odds went up, that
it would not hold for braking.
Hero's a short-term job, kid.
So what was stung, that they had to give up and lay back and let others do what
hani failed at?
And hand Tully on alone to mahendo'sat?
"All secure," Haral said, beside her, at her post. "I take her, captain?"
"I'll take this one," Pyanfar said, and reached and settled her arm into the
brace. She glanced up at the reflection of the rest of the bridge, crew in
place, Khym in his observer's post.
Fixed, they had told him. And his face had lightened, trusting them.
Fixed, they had told Tully, who was harder to lie to, being spacer himself. And
he had drugged himself into a haze by now, as his kind had to do.
"Starfix positive, Maing Tol," Haral said.
The dust whined over the hull, constant but thinner now. "Going to dust up
Kshshti a bit," she said. "Can't be helped."
Haral rolled a glance in her direction, a stark, stark stare. "Can't be helped,"
she said.
Sudden silence then, as the jump field began to build and the shields came up.
They rode their luck this time.
Chapter Seven
There were hazard lights blinking urgent alarm, and Harals voice protesting--
--"Captain--"
--Plaintively, as if she had not heard the beeps and already begun to reach.
There was perhaps some mercy in being human and drugged out of one's mind. . . .
"Got it," Pyanfar coughed, though her throat had gone to stone in the long slow
leak of time past the instruments, in the inside out of jumpspace. "Location?"
One went lethargic, grew fatally tranquil in that dizzy flow where one could do
nothing, nothing but watch and take a subjective day moving a finger. There was
an itch at the tip of her nose just as important as their collective lives. . .
.
But the intellect knew what the will forgot. The mind was primed with a sequence
of things she had waited two months to do. The right hand reached the control
she had meant two months ago to reach and brought the field up while they still
had power, long before they had gotten buoy signal. The eyes sought instruments,
diverging lines that had to meet--
The fields of Mahn, yellow in the sun, the woods, the dappled shade. . . .
The vine outside the wall of Chanur, that branched like a river, from one great
gnarled trunk; and generations of Chanur had climbed it, branch to branch to
branch--
"We're on." That was Geran's mumble confirming destination. "We're in the jump
range."
Location: need the vector.
"We're alive," Hilfy murmured. "We're going to make it, going to make it--"
--as if she were utterly surprised.
There it was, that red line trued right on.
"Huh." Pyanfar coughed her throat clear and blinked away the haze.
"Of course we did," Geran said. "Have any doubt, kid?"
There were safety procedures for a ship to follow when coming in from
dust-ringed Urtur and they were not following them. They were coming into a
system with C-charged dust in their company. Some of it would slip the smaller
field of their dump and go through Kshshti system like a hard-radiation storm.
"One more dump," she murmured, pleaded with the ship. "Stand by" -- thinking of
a ship she had seen die -- of a ship which had had a vane shot to flinders, and
jumped without a chance in a mahen hell of slowing down.
Nothing to do then but capsule the crew and hope--
She shoved the dump in and felt her eyes roll as the field cycled up. . . .come
on, come on, ship, hold it--
More failure lights blinked and held steady. Branches on the wall. . . ."Got to
be that Y unit," she muttered to Haral, to no one in particular, and had visions
of that dying ship again.
None of that crew was alive now. Those the mahendo'sat had hauled down in their
capsule and saved -- they had died at Gaohn, standing off the kif.
She moved an arm and did a third dump, watching in blear-eyed fascination as the
lines on the scopes crept together and merged like silken threads, red and blue,
as The Pride dragged at the interface and let the bubble go.
Down again, and the wail of alarms calling her back to life.
"Still over mark," Haral muttered. "That's twenty."
"I know. We've got it, we've got it left with the mains." She shoved the jump
drive off and sent The Pride into an axis roll, canceled G and threw the mains
on to finish the job the drive had failed. There was margin left. "Kif. Are
there kif? Look alive back there."
"Scan's clear," Chur's voice returned. "Kshshti positive; got the beacon. Stand
by course input."
Monitors changed priorities. The course change flashed in, very little off their
present heading. She put the bow down and trued up.
"That's luck," Haral said of the course they had been handed.
"Huh," she said. "That's priority for you." Rotational G picked up again as the
vector change took effect. "Find out what we lost."
"Stand by," Tirun said.
There was long silence, while comp ran diagnostics under Tirun's hands.
"It didn't hold?" Khym's voice, sounding plaintive and a bit shaken. "Did we
lose that vane again?"
"Didn't hold," Geran said. "But we're all right."
"Not leaving here real quick, are we?"
He was trying. And getting harder to deceive. Pyanfar swallowed hard, and took
the damage summary as it came flickering to the screen. "We're all right," she
heard Hilfy say, which was probably into the com, for Tully. "We're through. We
just had trouble with that unit. Sit still down there."
"Blew two holes in final-backup," Pyanfar muttered to Haral, in
conversation-tone.
"Gods," Haral said. That was all. And sent Kshshti system image her way, onto
all the screens. "Not much, this place."
"Huh."
It was not. A dull orange sun with only moons for company, moons and a station.
Small mining, sufficient for its needs. Some trading. Mostly mahendo'sat
maintained it because it would be someone's, situated as it was; and best it
should be theirs, when it was a connection on a route straight for Maing Tol
from Kefk, inside kif space. With a shipyard facility, thank the gods.
"Lot of traffic," Pyanfar muttered, picking up the com chatter. "Gods-rotted lot
of traffic to be out here at this hole."
"Kita," Haral reminded her.
"Kita for sure. Word got spread uncommon fast, didn't it? Or we lost more time
than we ought in that jump."
"Huuuhn." No comment. Not here, not now. Not with Khym on the bridge.
Twenty stars were The Pride's regular ports of call. Not Kshshti. It was not a
port any hani sought.
"Nasty little place," Geran muttered from back along the counter. "Real nasty."
* * *
There was time. There was time for a great many things as The Pride came limping
in toward Kshshti--
Time to hear the chatter of the station before their wavefront reached station
and station's then-wave reached them: the chitter and wail of methane-breathers
in confused conference, the clicking sounds of kif whose uncoded remarks were on
ordinary kifish business, terse and uninfprmative. No hani voices. No sign of
hani at all.
"Station answering," Hilfy said as that wave came in. The feed was routine,
coldly businesslike transmission. It might have been any approach to a mahen
station, less lively than some. "Queer quiet," Haral muttered. "I'd've expected
a curse to a mahen hell and back again, the way we came in."
"Huh," Pyanfar said. "Bet you to a mahen hell all of this is set up from the
start. We're expected and they're not rattling this thicket, no."
That got a look from Haral. Not a happy one.
So they glided closer and closer to Kshshti with the noise of methane-breathers
whispering over com.
Rimstation. Border station. Kif claimed the star; mahendo'sat had built the
station and held it with the tc'a and chi, whose mining had no particular
profit. Nothing at Kshshti did . . . except its nuisance value to kif ambitions
across the line.
"Where's that shiplist?" she asked of Hilfy. "I want names, imp."
"I'm still trying," Hilfy said. "Station says they've got computer trouble."
"Sure they do. Like the board at Meetpoint."
"Beg pardon, aunt?"
"Gods-rotted lot of malfunctions lately. Get that list. Tell them read it off by
voice and cut the nonsense."
"Don't know what we can do," Haral muttered beside her. And that was truth. The
vane systems boards flickered steady disaster under Tirun's probes. It was all
down. Everything.
"We'll manage," she said, "something--" but her gut was knotted up in one
unceasing panic. She fished the repair authorization out of safekeeping and
shifted to put that in her pocket, braced for arguments with mahen officials.
There would be outcries, howls, delays if she could not face them down.
And if there was no ship for Tully, if there were the wrong kif, and no help --
Not leaving here real quick, no.
"List is in," Hilfy said.
"To your one," Haral said and put it to the screen.
14 Iniri-tai: Maing Tol
9 Pasunsai: Idunspol
7 Nji-no: Maing Tol
30 Canoshato: Kshshti: insystem
29 Nisatsi-to: Kshshti: insystem
2 Ispuhen: Maing Tol: repair
32 Sphii'i'o: V'n'n'u
34 T'T'Tmmmi: N'i'i
40 A'ohu'uuu: Tt'a'va'o
49 knnn
50 knnn
51 knnn
52 knnn
10 Ginamu: Rlen Nle
20 Kekkikkt: Kefk
21 Harukk: Akkt
22 Inikktukkt: Ukkur
8 Ehrran's Vigilance: Anuurn
15 Ayhar's Prosperity: Anuurn
3 The Pride of Chanur: Anuurn: enroute
"Gods," Haral muttered.
"Party, huh?" She drew down her mouth as at a bad taste.
"Kekkikkt. Remember that one?"
"Couldn't forget. A whole list of good news, isn't it?"
"Got help. " She scanned the mahen section again. "Insystemers and
short-hoppers. Ever hear of Iniri-tai?"
"No."
"Pasunsai?"
"No. Neither of them."
"Gods rot, there's supposed to be a hunter ship here."
"Got Vigilance," Haral said dryly.
"Huh." She rose to the humor, but there was ice at her stomach.
"What do we tell them?"
She remembered what she had told them at Meetpoint, the final message. Kif on
our trail. No explanation possible. "Something inventive. We'd better."
"Ayhar," Tirun muttered between her teeth. And that was the second good
question.
"That scrapheap never beat us here on the Urtur route, that's sure."
"How'd they know?"
"Want to guess?"
Haral made a sound in her throat, not a pleasant one.
"Rhif Ehrran's got a lap pet."
"What do we do?"
"Huh. I'm thinking about it." Meaning she did not know. Meaning there was
nothing they could do but bluff and Haral already knew that much. Vigilance had
gathered itself a witness, that was what -- footed the bill to divert a merchant
carrier like Prosperity off its normal run. They had dumped cargo at Meetpoint,
same as themselves.
And knew where to intercept them. Same as Harukk had known.
Gods, were they the only ones running blind in this business?
"Stsho? Stle stles stlen?
Gtst knew Goldtooth's plans.
If gtst had talked--
"Captain," Hilfy said. "Tully's asking to come up."
More questions. Pointed ones. She drew a deep breath and downed the panic. "Tell
him yes. Tell him--" --watch his step. But he knew how to move in a ship
underway. He had felt the uncertainty in their dump, had understood more surely
than Khym had that they were in trouble, and what kind they were in -- that they
had escaped dying outright. But they were lame -- at Kshshti. With the kif.
Now what, now what we do, huh, Py-an-far?
Tully did not take long about it. Pyanfar turned her chair from his reflection
overhead to the solidity standing in the doorway.
He looked worried. He glanced about him, scanned the monitors with an eye that
knew what it was looking for, that could read more off the graphics than he
could understand in words.
"Safe," she said to him. "We're safe in Kshshti. Got help here. Big hani ship."
He nodded. He did hope. That was in the look he gave her. But something else was
in the slump of his shoulders as he turned and sought the seat Hilfy offered
him, observer, beside her post.
Quiet, thank the gods..She was ashamed of herself, remembering that he never did
go to masculine extremes. Professional. It was hard to remember that, that
Tully, whatever else he was, was not prone to hysterics. There, she thought,
Khym. That's how. That's how it's done. You can do it--
The way she had believed it once, having voyaged with Tully, so that she hoped--
Khym was looking at her now, one hard, unforgiving stare.
Sure, Khym. It's fixed.
Tully, perhaps, had never fallen for that lie in the first place.
And Khym had, perhaps, just seen that shiplist.
She turned back to controls. Blinking lights and mahen chatter had no
accusations.
The metal speck that was Kshshti became a star, a globe, resolved itself into
torus shape in the vid; became an aggregate of plates and flashing lights as The
Pride moved in and fell into rotating pattern with the wheel. "In lane," Haral
said. "Autos on."
"Take her in." Of a sudden the hours mounted up like leaden weight. She spun
about and faced the bridge as a whole, saw Khym sitting there with his elbows on
the console facing the scan.
Tully's pose was much the same. But he turned to face her, with that haunted
look he had worn for days.
"We'll get that repair done here," she said. "Kshshti can handle it."
Hilfy looked her way. So did Khym. And Khym's stare was dark.
Another lie? she read the backslant of one ear, the flare of nostrils.
Her own pulse raced. She held herself in place, silent, with nothing to say to
either of them.
Lies and lies and lies.
"When we get in," she said to Hilfy, looking straight at her, "I want a mahen
courier in here. I don't care who it is. Dock manager will do. Don't shake
things up, but get us someone who can get us someone else. Shouldn't be hard.
Suggest we've got a cargo difficulty."
Khym sat there. It occurred to her that in his life he had never told a witting
lie . . . being downworld hani, dealing with hani and believing in the han. And
it had never occurred to her that in dealings off-Annum she had had many faces
-- one for stsho, one for mahendo'sat. She was more hani with the kif.
"It isn't Annum," she said across the bridge in a low, hard voice. "Nothing's
Anuurn but Anuurn itself, crewman, and we aren't home."
Maybe he understood that much. She saw a slight flicker in the eyes.
"Pyanfar," Tully said. "Maing Tol. Go Maing Tol."
She put the com plug into her ear. "I understand," she said. He was scared.
Terrified. "Quiet, hear? We got you. We'll work it out. Fix, understand?"
He said nothing, neither he nor Khym.
"Gods rot," she muttered, and got up. "Take her in, Haral." She stalked off aft,
caught the safety grip and looked back. "I'm going to clean up. Tirun, you wash
up; I want you with me. I want that courier, niece."
It was not an easy thing to manage, a cleanup during dock approach. She had
inhaled a bit of water and stung her nose, but that meeting was its own kind of
emergency -- to be presentable as possible, formidable; and there was not, here,
the time to spend on it.
She overdid it, if possible -- wore her finest red breeches, her most
resplendent rings. She reeked of perfume. That was interspecies courtesy; and it
was strategy, to drown subtle cues to sensitive alien noses.
Face the bastards down, by the gods.
It was The Pride at stake. And with it--
The Pride nudged her way into dock, smooth, smooth glide now; a last warning
from Haral and another shift of G as all ship rotation ceased, only spin-match
carrying them now. The sensation of fifty pounds extra weight eased off. She
held on to the recessed grip by the cabin door, trusting Haral's skill, and dock
came softly, a thump against the bow, a clang of grapples going on, the
steadying of G force at a mahen-normal .992 as they became part of Kshshti's
wheel.
She gave her mane and beard a final combing, twitched the left ear's rings into
order. The sudden silence of the ship at rest gave an illusion of deafness: the
constant white noise had ceased.
"Aunt." That was Hilfy from the bridge. "I made that contact. We've got a
customs official on the way."
"Good." She clipped a pocket com to her waist, tucked a pistol into her
pocket-gods, no way for an honest hani to do business. But Kshshti, as she had
said to Khym, was not Anuurn, and the universe was a lonely walk among species
that had been at this hunt long before hani came.
Fix the rotted vane at Urtur; crawl up the column, indeed. Hilfy Chanur would
have. Would do, when she inherited The Pride. Hilfy would make high and wide
decisions, take the straight course, not the devious.
Perhaps she had done that herself once. She tried to remember. Perhaps age
dimmed the recall.
She thought not. No, by the gods.
Young fool, in charge of her ship. Not for by-the-gods years yet. But the
thought appalled her . . . to go back to Chanur, sit in the sun and waste away.
Haral, Tirun, no youngsters themselves, to give up their posts to bright-eyed
youngsters who thought everything was simple--
Gods.
She latched the drawer tight, and walked out, a little rubber-kneed in Kshshti's
heavier G.
"Captain." From the pocket com, Haral's voice. "Message from Vigilance. Rhif
Ehrran's at our dock."
"Oh, good gods."
"They want the lock open."
She put a claw in the pocket com. "Where's that customs officer?"
"On the way. That's all we know. Stall?"
She thought about it. Gave it up. There was no need starting off hot. "No. Let
her in. Due courtesy. You and Chur and Khym stay on the bridge and keep your eye
on things. Hilfy: galley. Geran and Tully, half an hour to clean up and trade
watch with first shift. Move it." Crew was tired. Exhausted. Gods knew how much
rest they would get. Or when.
"Aye," Haral said. "They're about to hook up the accessway."
"At your discretion."
She took the lift down, the while the ship-to-station connections whined and
clanked away against the outer hull, the thunk! of lines socketing home, the
portside contact of the access tube snugging into its housing on the hull.
Tirun joined her, swung along with a visible weight in her right-hand pocket and
not a word of expectations.
Kshshti, after all.
"Ehrran's out there," Pyanfar said.
"Heard that." Cheerlessly. "Figured black-breeches would be quick about it."
There was the final thump, that was the seal in place.
"Stand by," Haral said.
"Ker Rhif," Pyanfar said-took up a pose facing the han deputy and her
black-breeched crewwoman; not insolent, no. Just solid enough to invite no
farther progress down the corridor.
"Ker Pyanfar." Rhif Ehrran took up a like pose, arms folded. Armed, by the gods:
a massive pistol hung at the side of those black silk trousers. The crewwoman
carried the same. "Sorry to trouble you this early. I'm sure you've got other
things on your mind."
Pyanfar blew softly through her nostrils, comment enough.
"What caused the damage?" Ehrran asked in that friendly, official way.
She pursed her lips into a pleasant expression and glared. "Well, now, that's
something we're still looking into, captain. Likely it was dust."
"You want to explain that last message at Meetpoint?"
"I think it's self-explanatory. I meant it. It would be a lot better if you
avoided us right now. We've got a problem. I don't pretend we don't. I don't
think it ought to involve the han."
"You feel qualified to decide that?"
"Someone has to. Or the han's in it. I hadn't wanted that."
"You hadn't wanted that."
She refrained from retort. It was what Ehrran wanted. It was all she needed --
if anything lacked at all.
"Where do you plan to go?" Rhif Ehrran asked.
"Nowhere, till I get that vane fixed."
"Then?"
"Maing Tol. Points beyond."
A silence then. "You know," Rhif Ehrran said, "you've had a lot of experience
out here, a lot of experience. Do I have to tell you the convention regarding
hiring a ship out?"
"You don't. We're not."
"You're sitting in a border port with your tail in a vise, Chanur. Are you still
going to brazen it out? I'm giving you a chance, one chance before I suspend
your license on the spot. You get that two-legged cargo of yours down here and
turn him over."
"You're not referring to my husband."
Ehrran's ears went flat and her mouth opened.
"I didn't think so," Pyanfar said. "Who sent you? Stle stles stlen?"
"See here, Chanur. You don't negotiate with me. I've got a han ship eight
light-years into the Disputed Territories because I figured you'd foul it up,
I'm likely to get my tail shot up getting out of here, and I'm not in the mood
to trade pleasantries. I want the alien down here. I want him wrapped up and
ready to go, and be glad I don't pull your license."
"We aren't carrying any alien. You're talking about a citizen of the Compact."
"I'm aware of the fiction the mahendo'sat arranged. Let's not argue
technicalities. Get him down here."
"He's a passenger on my ship. He has some say where he goes."
"He'll have no say if this ship has no license."
She drew a long, slow breath. The world had gone dark all round, excepting Rhif
Ehrran's elegant person. "There's Compact Law, Ehrran. I trust you'll remember
that."
"You're on the edge. Believe me that you are."
She stood there with her heart slamming against her ribs and the light refusing
to come back. She was aware of Tirun there, at her side. She could not see her.
"Where will you take him? To the han?"
"Just leave that to us."
"No. You're talking about a friend of mine. I can be real difficult, ker Rhif.
And we're not in hani space."
There was long, frozen silence. Rhif Ehrran's ears flicked then, breaking the
moment. "You're a fool, Chanur. I can't say I don't respect your position."
"Where's he going?"
"Trust me, Chanur, that things go on in this universe somewhat remote from your
interests. Suffice it to say that this is not a unilateral action."
"Gods rot it, he's not a load of fish!"
"If you have such concern for his safety, captain, I'd suggest you distance you
from him and him from you -- considering the condition of your ship -- and let
me get him out of here."
She looked away, found no solace elsewhere. Glanced back again. "We'll bring
him."
"I'll send a car."
"Someone of my crew will take the ride with him," she said quietly. "By your
leave. He's not going to like this."
"I assure you--"
203
C. J. Cherryh
A dark figure appeared in the corridor, at the accessway: Ehrran's ears twitched
round and body followed as Pyanfar reached for her pocket, but it was
mahendo'sat, not kif.
"Customs officer," Pyanfar said.
"Advice," Rhif Ehrran said. "This is Kshshti. Not Meetpoint. If you can get this
ship running, get back to Urtur and get on to Kura. Fast. If she won't stand it,
sit tight"
"Same advice you give Prosperity?"
"Prosperity's on han business, Leave it at that. Stay out of things that don't
concern you, Chanur."
"I hear you. I hear you very well."
"The car will be here in an hour. I don't want any foulups."
"Understood, captain."
Ehrran inclined her head in scant courtesy, collected her crewwoman and departed
the corridor, past the mahendo'sat who turned and stared.
It was a small, worried-looking mahen official who slouched past the departing
Ehrran with a backward look. Mahen female, this, a clerical with the usual
clutter of clipboard and signatures and seals and notebooks hung about her
chest; but the belt which held up the kilt about her rather pot-bellied person
had the badges of middling authority.
Then the gut came moderately in and the head came up -- no miraculous
transformation, only the suddenly sharper look of this disreputable individual.
"Voice, I," she said.
"Huh," said Pyanfar, laying back her ears. She set her hands on hips, drew a
neat quick breath, tried to reset her wits for another frame of reference. Gods.
A Voice, yet. No dockside official. "Ehrran know you? Whose voice?"
A second look back, this one taller and disdainful. The Voice -- if voice it was
-- have no name, no particular identity, and yet a considerable one, being
alter-ego to some Personage, speaker of the unspeakable, direct negotiator. She
straightened round again. "Voice stationmaster Kshshti. Stationmaster send say
you number one fool come in like that."
"No choice."
"More fool deal with fool." The Voice gestured over her shoulder, where the
Ehrran had vanished. "Where cargo?"
Pyanfar made a deprecating gesture toward the self-claimed Voice. "Where
authorization?"
The mahe drew out one small object from her belts, a badge inlaid with gold and
the Kshshti port emblem. "You keep this cargo aboard."
She laid her ears down, pricked them up again. "Look--"
"Keep. Not permit this transfer."
Pyanfar tucked her hands in her belt, turned a frown Tirun's way and looked back
again. No time to start shouting. Not yet. She gestured toward lower-deck ops.
"Look, you want go sit down, Voice? Get drink, talk?"
"What talk? Like got big cargo, got damage, got make foulup whole business?"
"Look Honorable." Now it was time to shout. "The Pride's no gods-blasted
warship, got no weapons, hear? I risk my ship twice, got damage, and I got the
promise of your government to make it good." She pulled the authorization from
her pocket and handed it to the Voice. "We got downtime, got cargo lost--"
"We fix."
It was like leaning on a wall and feeling it go down. She was off her balance an
instant, staring into those dark, earnest eyes.
Then it made sense. She drew in a breath and twitched her ears back in the
beginnings of negation.
"Meanwhile," the Voice said, "you stall this fool deputy."
"No. Not possible."
"You want help, got."
"You bet I got. Got authorization." She retrieved the paper from the Voice's
hand and waved it under the Voice's nose. "Un-con-di-tional. Code Hasano-ma!
That mean anything to you?"
"We not permit this transfer."
"Well, take it up with the deputy. I can't stop it. It's my license. You
understand that?"
The Voice came close, tapped her on the chest with a dull-clawed forefinger.
"Hani. You we know longtime. This other fool we got no confidence."
"I can't do anything."
White rimmed the dark eyes. "You get number-one repair job, make quick. Want you
back in action, Pyanfar Chanur. You listen. We got right now no ship here stop
this bastard. Got delicate situation, got stsho upset -- you know stsho bastard,
know hani got young fool, old bastard stsho lot smart, lot timid, got own
interest. Not say not-friend. Got own interest. Our interest got you fix up. You
fix han."
Her jaw dropped. "Good gods! what do you think I am?"
"Maybe we talk, huh?"
"There's nothing to talk about." She waved a hand aft. "That's the Y unit out.
The Y unit took the main column linkage. When the linkage failed--"
The mahe waved her own lank black-furred hand. "Get you fix, you take this
cargo."
"I'm telling you you can't get that vane fixed fast enough. Two hundred, three
hundred work hour fix that vane. We sit here we got kif positioned all round
this system. Plenty time for that. Mahe, we've got knnn loose!"
"God--!"
"Not our fault. Mahendo'sat set this up, all the way. Your own precious
Personage at Maing Tol. We got routed here. Number one usual mahen foulup, like
Meetpoint, like got Kita blocked, like desert me with no support--"
"Ship come. Meanwhile get you fix. Lousy hani engineering, huh?"
"Gods rot, you route a ship through Urtur and throw a course change at it and
see how it holds!"
Minuscule mahen ears twitched. The nose wrinkled and the Voice lifted a
deprecating hand. "Technical not my business. Personage say: Find damage, fix,
send this fool away quick before got kif organize. We fix. You hold this cargo."
"Can't do!"
"Want repair?"
The breath strangled her. "I'm due repair, you bastard. I've got the paper says
so. I can't stall the deputy. . . ."
The Voice frowned. Her small ears folded, twitched as she looked up and jabbed
again with the finger. "We take care this cargo. We take him station center, big
inquiry, lot fluff. Get you fix, bring back cargo -- twenty hour."
"Can't be done in twenty hours."
The mahe lifted one finger. "Bet?"
She stared at the mahe, thinking treachery,
thinking double-cross; and all the same her pulse raced. She threw a look at
Tirun, saw her cargo chief/engineer with that same wary, heart-thumping thought.
"They'd have to replace the whole gods-rotted tail to make that schedule," Tirun
muttered. "No patch job."
"Got good system," the Voice said. "Better. Mahen make. Match up you systems no
trouble. Twenty hour, you run. We fix han deputy. We confiscate this cargo. Let
deputy go Maing Tol make complaint."
"Gods, you know what you let me in for?"
"How much already, hani? You think. How much you got?"
"We'd still have kif." She gnawed a hangnail and stared at the Voice.
"Always got kif."
"You know a ship named Harukk?"
"Know. One bastard."
"He's been with us since Meetpoint. He knows what we've got. Ship named Ijir.
Our backup. It's gone. Kif have got it."
"Damn, hani!"
"Kif got whatever it had. They know whatever it knew."
The mane's mouth made a hard line as she looked down and up again. "You run
fast, hani. We get you fix, you burn tail get hell out Kshshti. Maybe arrange
small accident this Harukk. Maybe skimmer bump vane, huh? Maybe multiple
collision."
"All three? You want kif feud?"
"Raindrop in ocean, hani. You make deal?"
She gnawed her mustaches, looked at the deck plates, looked up at the mahe.
"Deal. You handle the deputy. You stop her. Caught between local government and
a han order-I can't very well contest a confiscation, can I -- if it gets here
first."
"We get car. Take custody." The mahe drew a watch from amid the clutter of her
belts. "Time now 1040. You expect action, maybe -- half hour."
"I want a Signature on that repair order."
Small ears twitched. "You doubt word?"
"Records get lost. I'd be in a mess later if that happened -- wouldn't I?"
"So." The mahe wrinkled her nose, made a grimace more hani grin than primate,
whipped up a tablet. She scribbled and affixed a Signature. "Repair authorize,
charge Maing Tol authority. Got. You satisfied?"
Pyanfar took it, waved a hand toward the outbound corridor. "Speed, huh?"
"Twenty hour," the mahe said, fixed her with a hard stare that held something of
mirth in it. Then she turned on her heel and walked off toward the outbound
corridor.
Pyanfar drew another breath, inhaled the mahe's lingering perfume. Blew it out
again and looked at Tirun.
"Got a chance," Tirun muttered.
"Gods know what they'll pin on our tail. Or what they'll stand by when the
inquiry board meets. We just agreed to get shot at. You know that?"
"Better odds than ten minutes ago."
"Huh." But her heart was still pounding against her ribs. It was hope,
unaccustomed in. the last two years. The Pride, back in prime-condition. Finish
this job, get the hold loaded on credit at Maing Tol before the other bills came
in. It was a chance, one chance -- and if the human mess settled down and the
human trade materialized, if that came through -- She waved an arm at the exit.
"Shut that. We've got kif out there."
Meanwhile -- meanwhile there was one difficult thing to do.
The smell of gfi went through the bridge, ordinary and comforting; voices
drifted out of the galley, noisy and normal. But Haral was back at her post,
damp from a hasty shower, and turned a solemn look back while Pyanfar slid the
tablet's Signature codestrip into comp.
Comp talked to ship-record, to station comp, back and forth in a rapid flurry of
codes. "Checks out," Pyanfar said, while Tirun came and draped an arm over her
sister's seatback, two sober, weary faces. Haral had heard. There was no
question about that: Haral always listened when there were strangers on the
deck.
"Tully listen in?" Pyanfar asked.
"No."
"Where is he?"
A nod toward the galley. "Everyone's there."
"Huh." She drew her shoulders up as against some cold wind and looked that way.
She tucked her hands into the belt of her trousers. "Come on. Both of you. Let
the damage list go."
They followed, two shadows at her back-- Cursed lot of nonsense, Pyanfar
thought, screwing her courage up. Gods, where was common sense, that breaking
one small bit of unpleasantness upset her more than facing down the hem?
There was noise, chatter, Khym's deeper voice wanting something from the
cabinet-- "Sit down, Tully," Chur said. "For godssakes, na Khyrn-- Hilfy,
where's the tofi got to? Can you find it?" And glanced around at Pyanfar.
"Captain."
"Sit," Pyanfar said sharply, stilling voices, the tofi-search, the opening and
closing of cabinets. Geran came and put a cup in her hand. "You too. Sit down,
Khym." --as he made one last foray into a cabinet. He snatched a substitute and
subsided scowling into the middle of the benches, shaking the spice into his cup
and concentrating on that while others found their seats left and right of him.
Pyanfar braced herself at the galley corner where stable footing existed
in-dock, foot braced at the edge of the shifting step-up of the gimballed table
section. Khym sulked, in general foul humor, and pretended full occupation. She
leaned there, sipped the liquid and felt the warmth coil through a boding chill
at her stomach. Others were still, not the rattle of a spoon, only a shifting as
Tirun and Haral nudged Tully over and slid into the benches.
"I'll make this fast," Pyanfar said. "I've got to. Tully, is that translator
picking me up?"
He touched his ear, where the plug was set. Looked at her with those bright,
worried eyes. "I hear fine."
She came and sat down on the jumpseat, leaned her elbows on the table, the cup
between her hands. She faced all of them. But Tully most directly.
"You'll know," she said, "we never did fix that thing at Urtur. Shut up, Khym--"
before Khym could quite get his mouth open. "Tully, there wasn't a way to fix
it. Hear? So we made it in. One vane is gone. Takes time to fix. Understand? Now
we got a little trouble. There's a hani here wants to take you on her ship. You
understand? Hani authority."
The pale eyes flickered with -- perhaps -- understanding. One was never sure.
Fright: that, certainly. "Go from you?" he asked. "I go? Go new ship?"
"No. Now listen to me. I don't want them to take you. This is a mahen station.
Mahendo'sat, understand? Mahendo'sat take you to the center of the station, keep
you safe, fix the ship. Twenty hours. You understand? They're going to take you
with them into the center of the station."
"Kif. Kif here--"
"I know. It's all right. They won't get near you. The mahendo'sat will bring you
back when we're ready to move. This way we keep the other hani from taking you
to their ship. We keep you safe, understand?"
"Yes," he agreed. He held the cup in front of him, in both his hands, looking as
if he had lost his appetite and his thirst.
"Got to move fast, Tully. Get down below. Take whatever you need. Clothes. A car
is coming."
"Car."
"No nonsense this time. You'll be under guard all the way. Not like the stsho.
Not like Meet-point. Mahendo'sat have teeth."
"One of us," Hilfy said quietly, "one of us could ride along. Make sure they
understand him."
There were a lot of unspoken questions around the table, a lot of worried looks
from hands who knew what damage existed in the vane. No one was questioning.
"Listen," Pyanfar said, moving the cup on the table out of her way. "Truth:
twenty hours. We're going for a first-class job. Whole new assembly back there."
"Gods," Geran breathed in reverence. Chur blinked; and Hilfy stared.
"They say twenty hours. They want us headed out of here for their own reasons.
Now move it. We've got to have him down at the dock in ten minutes, packed and
out."
"One of us ride along?" Chur asked.
"You and Hilfy." So the two of them had always fussed over Tully. Keep them both
happy. "Armed. This is Kshshti."
"I'll go," Khym said.
She glanced his way with a furrowing of the brow. Honest offer. Feckless lunacy.
"If there was trouble," he said.
"No."
"If--"
"No." She stood up and tossed the cup into the disposal. "Get it moving. Nine
minutes."
Crew hurried. Haral took Tully in tow, her hand hooked about his elbow, and
headed for the bridge.
"Pyanfar," Khym said, working his own way out from between bench and table.
"Pyanfar, listen to me."
"If you want to sulk go to your quarters and get out of the way."
"Is it Ehrran?"
"I haven't time." She brushed past his arm and headed for the bridge, spun on
one foot as she heard him following and brought him up short. "Use some
judgment, Khym."
"I'm trying to help!"
She gave him one long desperate look, and watched his expression go from anger
to desperation too. Anguish. She sorted a dozen jobs. All of them took skill.
"You want to help, I want Kshshti data pulled from comp. Go do that." She spun
about again and headed bridge-ward, for the papers she had under security.
That had to go. It was all one package, Tully and that envelope. If Ehrran knew
about Tully she likely knew he came with documents. And all of it had to go into
mahen custody. Fast. She could keep the deputy off the bridge: the law gave her
that.
But since the kif hit Gaohn, since a great many changes had happened in the
han--
One took no chances. Gods knew what Prosperity would swear to. It had gotten to
that. Distrust of foreigners. Distrust of hani who defied the conventions.
Foreign ways, they said. Hani males outside Anuurn: the keepers of the home,
learning there were things outside the hon, friends stauncher than other hani,
outsider-ways of thought.
She reached the bridge, opened the security bin beside Haral and took out the
precious packet-committed treason by that if not before. She slammed the bin
shut.
Haral looked round at her, her scarred face quite, quite calm.
Khyrn was there too, just watching, from the side, as staunchly downworld in his
own way as Ehrran's clan.
Worried. And silent now.
"Got something coming outside," Haral said, whose eyes and ears were partly The
Pride's from where she sat. And whose discretion was absolute. "Two minutes,
captain."
Chapter Eight
She headed down the corridor from the lift in haste, keyed the airlock to
inside-manual and looked back as Hilfy and Chur and Geran came hurrying along
with Tully in their midst.
"Car's on the dockside," Harral advised them from the general address. "You
operating that on manual?"
"I've got it," Pyanfar said, touching the pickup by the lock controls. "Just
keep a sharp lookout up there."
The four arrived, Tully dishevelled looking and disreputable in a white stsho
shirt half tucked into the blue hani trousers. The shirt was far too big, the
trousers too small; and for luggage he clutched a white plastic sack of the
219
C. J. Cherryh
kind they used for utility -- a change of clothes, toiletries, gods knew what
they had thrown together for him in so short a time.
"Got the translation tapes?"
"Got," Tully answered for himself, patting the bundle.
"Here." She handed him the packet. "Tuck that in too. For the gods' sakes don't
give it to the mahendo'sat."
He knew what it was. She saw the disturbed look, the doubt.
"Go on," she said, and triggered the inner lock. It hissed open with an
exhalation of cold air. "Chur, Hilfy, you watch it. You watch it coming back.
Don't you walk it. If they don't give you a car, you call and I'll see they do.
Tell them priority. Tell them Personage."
"Right," said Chur.
She walked into the lock with them, pushed the button for the second door on
alternate-set, so that the first closed behind them. She took no chances. Not
now. The yellow accessway gaped like a ribbed gullet. The chill hit like a wall.
"Hurry it."
"Pyanfar," Tully said of a sudden, and turned and balked. She put a hand on his
back and propelled him ahead of her.
"Come on, come on, Tully. It's all right." She walked by him with her crewwomen
trailing after, kept her arm at his back and kept him moving down the accessway.
He was cold already. She felt the stiffness in his movements as they hit the
slant and headed down to the rampway. "Won't be long. Bodies will heat up the
car." --Chatter to keep him distracted. She saw the gray of the docks like docks
anywhere, the pair of vehicles with the strobes flashing. "Translator's going to
be out of range awhile, but they'll get you hooked up again when you get to
station central. There's an outside chance -- a small chance, understand? -- it
might be more than twenty hours. Might be, might be -- they might have to shift
you to some mahen ship. I don't think so--"
He balked again as they came down the last few steps, turned and gave her a
panicked look.
"Captain," Chur said from behind, sharp and urgent: she heard the engines at the
same time, looked toward the sound down the dock.
Another car, headed their way in a great hurry, from up-dock.
"Gods rot," she muttered, grabbed Tully by the arm and pulled him on. "Fast,
Tully." The mahendo'sat in the cars got out, excepting the two drivers, one
curly brown, a tasunno mahe, smaller than the others and rare this side of Iji;
an officer and four others the gods-knew-what race of generations-back spacers,
black and tall and bearing badges and sidearms on the usual harness. Not
friendly-looking. Like one black wall. Tully balked again, looked about in panic
as the moving car hummed up and braked, resisted again as two of the mahe
grabbed him and pulled him toward the open door of the second mahen car.
"Pyanfar!" he cried.
Hilfy started forward, but Pyanfar caught her arm and held her as the
number-three car door slid down and three Ehrran crew got out in haste.
"Hold it," the senior said. "Hold it there."
Pyanfar shrugged and faced them. She had let go Hilfy's arm, and everyone had
stopped -- the mahe trying to get Tully into the car, the Ehrran who had bailed
out of their vehicle.
"Go on," Pyanfar said to Hilfy, and moved the hand at her side. "Chur, Hilfy.
It's all right. Sorry, Ehrran. You've been preempted. Station-master's
intervened."
"You," the foremost Ehrran said, gesturing at the mahendo'sat. "Where's the
authorization?" The mahe officer said something in one of Iji's manifold
languages, waved a hand. The rest pulled Tully into the car and Chur and Hilfy
piled in after. Doors began to close. "Chanur," the Ehrran said. Pyanfar gave a
second shrug, displayed empty hands. "Out of my control."
"That's your personnel,"
"Just to keep him quiet on the way. You'll have to take it up with station
offices."
There were limits. Cursing a captain to her face was one; calling her a liar was
another. The Ehrran did neither, but it was in her eyes, that were lambent
brass. The mahen vehicles snugged up the doors and began to move. Ehrran cast a
wild look that way, waved an arm at her crewmates and they dived back into their
own car.
"Evidently the Ehrran haven't got a com in there," Pyanfar observed to Geran,
who had stood fast by her left. "Gods be!"
The hani vehicle swerved wildly about and cut close to the mahendo'sat, dropped
back as the mahendo'sat refused to be passed on the narrow dock.
"Cheeky lot," Geran said.
"Won't go well out here. Gods-rotted black-breeches thinks it's Anuurn. Ought to
be interesting when they get news to their captain, oughtn't it?"
Geran turned a quizzical look her way
"I rather imagine they had trouble getting a car," Pyanfar said. "For some
reason." Up the row there was another swerve, visible as the cars went up the
curving deck, headed for the curtaining tangle of lines that would cut off the
view. "Gods rot--"
"They're crazy," Geran said.
"Come on," she said, spun on her heel and headed up the ramp, with quickening
long strides.
"Put me through to Vigilance," she said when she hit the bridge, not out of
breath, not quite, but blowing through her nostrils. Geran was still with her,
equally disarranged.
"Got that on vid," Haral said with quiet satisfaction, the while Khym stared in
confusion and Tirun moved past his seat to reach com. "That maneuver going out."
"Sharp," she said. Haral smiled and powered her chair back round to business
with the damage check.
"They don't answer," Tirun said, half turning in her seat. "No response."
"Log that. Call the station office and file a protest."
"Hazard to our personnel?"
"That'll do." She drew a quieter breath, hands on hips. Looked at Khym and saw a
gleam in his eye she had not seen since Mahn. She stood a breath taller, walked
over to lean over Haral's shoulder. "Next thing's that repair crew. Any sign
yet?"
Kshshti docks passed in a blur of gray and brown, of dingy fronts obscured by
the shielding of the car windows as the vehicle hummed along, buzz-thump-thump
as the soft tires hit the joints of unshielded deck plating with manic speed in
time to Hilfy Chanur's heart. She leaned to look back again as far as the
shield-dimmed car window afforded: the Ehrran vehicle had fallen in behind them,
no longer attempting to pass, but staying close on their tail. Tully's leg
pressed hers on the left, the three of them occupying the back seat with Chur on
the far side. Two of the mahen guards sat in front with the driver. The escort
car filled much of the forward view, they ran so close to its tail: the strobe
atop that lead car limned objects and the three mahendo'sat in front in
unreality and blocked out the outside so that it had no color. Beside them
office fronts and gantry machinery passed in a blur.
"Easy." She felt a shiver from Tully and patted his leg as she straightened
around to look his way. "Safe, Tully. It's all right." The translator had
stopped working as they passed out of range. But some words he understood on his
own. "Safe, hear?"
He nodded, glancing distractedly her way. He had his plastic bundle clutched
firmly in his arms and they sat close to him to keep him warm. The white flash
from the front of the car glanced off his pale skin and pale hair and turned his
nervous movements into something surreal.
"I--" he began, and the car lurched, swerved, threw them all forward and left
with a suddenness that brought the rear of the escort car up in Hilfy's view as
she turned her head, the car, the mahendo'sat driver fighting to turn, the
guards flinging up arms to protect themselves as the car slewed into angled
impact, glanced, hooked itself perversely into the escort car's torn body and
kept slewing round, grating metal as a tire stripped off the rim and jolted over
deckplates. Things blurred, snapped clear in a howl from the mahendo'sat, and a
fist slammed them; the back of the seat flew up in Hilfy's face and she grabbed
for Tully as her head hit the padding with the shock of explosion whumping
through the air and the whole car tilting and slamming down again.
"They're firing!" Chur yelled and that reality got through to Hilfy's brain,
sent her hand clawing for the gun in her pocket, numb-fingered from a shock to
her elbow somewhere in the spin. The car had stopped. The forward window was
cracked. The driver was slumped; both guards were alive. . . . "Stay inside,"
Chur was yelling from the other side as one guard worked at the door on that
side. A shock hit the car and blossomed in a fireball beyond the cracked front
window and Hilfy got the gun out as the stench of ozone roiled through the door
in silver smoke. The door opened on manual, slammed down as the smoke poured in
and the mahe sprawled as he went out in a pop of weaponsfire through the smoke:
his comrade fired from inside and another shock hit the car, fire bloomed,
deafening.
"Hilfy!" Tully dragged at her as cold air hit from the other direction, as Chur
got the door open on the sheltered side and bailed out of the car. Hilfy flung a
look in the other direction, pasted shot after shot at the flutter of black kif
robes amid the smoke, intending to go when she had stopped that.
But alien hands seized the waist of her trousers and skidded her sharply
backward across the slick seat even as she fired. An arm whipped round her waist
and jerked her from the door backwards as she got off a last few shots. Tully
tried to carry her, but she twisted free, got her feet on the ground and ran for
herself, Tully beside her, Chur--
Another shock blossomed by her, and she was flying through the air, the deck
coming up under her hands and under her face as something heavy came down on her
and sprawled.
She was running then after a blank space, her legs working, not knowing how she
had gotten there or where she was going until the gray of a girder came up and
hit her shoulder and she spun, flailed for balance and caromed into Tully, arms
about him as she decided on cover and kept falling, crawling then, along the
base of the gantry over deckbolts. She gripped the hard edge of the base rim,
hitched herself along, lay still then. Smoke roiled along the overhead where red
alarm strobes flashed, staining girders and smoke alike. Sounds were distant,
through the ringing in her ears. She felt small distant pains, saw Tally's face
twisted with exertion and with pain. "Chur?" he said, twisting on his elbow to
look back. In panic: "Chur?" And Hilfy rolled over to look through the obscuring
smoke, wiping her eyes and trying to see and hear.
"Chur?" she cried.
The red-gray smoke gave up a momentary view of tangled vehicles and other
wreckage, of running figures, of fire from various quarters. She heard the dim
chitter of kif commands, flinched as a shot came their way and reached to her
pocket for the gun, but it was gone.
"Hilfy--" Tully cried, and pulled her further back as kif poured past them to
take up position.
"O gods," she breathed. "We're behind the wrong gods-rotted line!"
Shots popped off the wall behind them and ricocheted wildly. She ducked down and
in the first pause in fire she grabbed Tully by the shirt, scrambled up and ran
with him while the smoke held -- but that smoke was not dissipating as it
should, the fans were not working, and it dawned on her battered skull that they
were cut off, shut down: section doors had sealed.
"Where?" Pyanfar shouted into the com as if volume could help, aware of Tirun
and Khym and Geran at her back and a great silence elsewhere on the bridge.
"What 'stay still'? You gods-rotted incompetent -- Where around the rim?"
--Babble poured into her ear. She whirled round as her eye caught movement, saw
Haral's running arrival on the bridge and waved a furious hand at her crew.
"Arm! Move it!"
"Got section seal go," the mahen official was saying into her ear. "Got no
chance kif get away, you wait report--"
"You authorize us past that seal. Hear?"
"Office got no authority--"
"Get it!" She cut the official off in midword and shoved her way past Khym.
Geran had the sidearms out of the locker. "Get the rifles," she said. They had
them. It was illegal, a defense they never admitted to port authorities they
had.
"Aye," Haral said, and ran.
"Pyanfar--" Khym said.
She put the lock on controls, spun about and ran. Khym was with them and she had
no desire to stop him. Not in this.
* * *
The huge section doors were shut, red and amber strobes on their surface
spearing through the wafts of smoke that reached even here. Sirens wailed and
echoed in the vastness of the docks. "They're shut, they're sealed," Hilfy
gasped, blinking smoke-tears and half-carrying the human who half-carried her,
the two of them weaving past the clutter of dockside bins and chutes as they
tried to get the break they needed to get past the line of fire. "We can't get
out -- Tully, stop!"
Shots broke out from a new direction. She dragged him off his balance. They both
staggered, thumped into the echoing side of a bin and she landed hard on her
rump as Tully collapsed with a gasp. Flesh stank. He rolled over, clutching at
his arm and she kept pulling at him, claws hooked into his shirt as she worked
toward the corner--
O gods, that there be shelter there--
There was an alleyway of a kind, a recess for freight loading, a door with a
white light over its recess. SERVICE ACCESS, said a battered sign, ROHOSU
COMPANY. Beside it, mahen graffiti, obscurely obscene. She tried the door; but
it was locked like every other door along the row once the emergency had
sounded. She rang the bell; battered at the unyielding steel. "Open up, gods rot
you! We're hani! Let us in!"
No answer. Tully babbled something. Sirens.
She heard them too, far down the dock. She sank down by him, pried his hand from
his arm and grimaced at the wound the dim light showed, black edged and bleeding
hard. She grabbed the tail of his shirt and tore a wide strip of cloth off,
pressed it tight and put his hand on it, ripped another strip off to tie it
with.
"Easy," she breathed, senseless chatter to keep him from panic. "Easy, you're
all right, all right, hear?"
He slumped back against the wall, his face gone to waxen color. The hand of the
wounded arm shook and the tremor spread to the rest of him as he began to go
into shock. But he listened, his eyes on her whenever she looked.
"Listen," she said, "listen, station's onto it now. And The Pride -- they'll
have heard by now. The captain's doing something, you can bet she'll get us help
--Pyanfar, understand?"
"Pyanfar come."
"Bet on it. All right, huh?" She got the bandage around his arm, put his hand on
it to hold that. She snugged the knot tight and he mumbled something in human,
language. No translator. The translator-tape--
--in the bundle of clothes. With the papers. Back at the wreck. With Chur--
"Hilfy--" He stiffened, eyes fixed toward the exit of the alley. She turned her
head.
Shadows moved in that red-dyed smoke, paused and conversed outside, a gathering
of black robes, tall, stoop-shouldered silhouettes.
Tully edged aside, out of the light the door cast. She moved too, as carefully
as she could, as far as Tully did, and put her arms about him to hide his pallor
with her own redbrown hide as much as she could within the shadows. She felt
Tully shivering; felt her own stomach knotted up when she recalled kif eyesight.
They were night-hunters by preference; and Tully -- white shirt, pale hair,
paler skin--
She kept her arms clenched about him.
And saw that conversation outside their refuge break up, the kif start to move.
One stopped and looked their way.
* * *
"Open that gods-rotted door!" Pyanfar yelled, and used the rifle butt on the
guardroom spex, so a scared mahendo'sat in the section-control yelled back
threats from the other side. "It's clear from the Personage!" she yelled. "Open
that section-seal!"
"Au-to-matic," the yell came back through the com-transfer, in mangled pidgin.
Mahens station. Half the personnel never managed fluency in pidgin.
"Personage!" she yelled back in mahen Standard.
Gibberish came back. This one spoke dialect.
* * *
Black-robed shadows filled the alleyway, dark, featureless, except for the wan
light of the bulb in the low ceiling of the door recess and Hilfy gathered
herself to her feet. Tully struggled and she helped him by his good arm to give
him that chance at least.
"Run if you can," she said in a low voice, thinking perhaps she could break a
hole for him. But he knew so few words. He pressed closer to her as the kif gave
them less room. He would try to fight-blunt-fingered, without any advantage,
without even speed to outrun a kif. And it was Tully they wanted: alive. She had
no doubt of that. "Got claws," she said beneath her breath. "You don't. Run,
understand?"
The kif moved closer, keeping their circle. "We'll not hurt you," one said.
"You're in the wrong place, young hani. Certainly you are. If you had a gun you
would have used it, would you not? But we aren't your enemies."
"Who?" She perceived the origin of the voice: the speaker stood out among the
rest, taller, finer-robed, and she guessed the name as she edged into Tully,
trying to keep open space about them as the kif moved and shifted.
"Sikkukkut. From Meetpoint. You remember me, young Chanur. I have no wish to
hurt you, either one. And there are far too many of us. Come, be reasonable."
The kif moved, all of them at once. "Run!" she yelled at Tully, spun and swung
and kept swinging as her claws carried a kif headon into the wall. "Run, for
godssakes, run--"
Black cloth obscured her vision, cleared as Tully pulled one off her, and she
rattled that one's brains.
But kif claws pulled Tully by the shoulder, and grabbed him by the arm.
"Gods blast!" she cried qnd tried to get that one off him, but two kif got her
arms and a kifish arm came hard about her throat.
* * *
The door thundered back on chaos, the flash of red lights on smoke the fans
refused, the sweep of floods, the lunatic strobe-flash. "Gods," Geran muttered.
The center of the trouble was evident, a knot of flashing white lights stabbing
into the smoke far up the dockside. Pyanfar started running first, rifle in both
hands -- "No, wait--" from the mahen official who had gotten the door open.
"Hani, got wait!--" But Geran was pace for pace with her and gaining --
fleet-footed Geran, whose sister Chur was in that mess.
A laser shot streaked the smoke. Pyanfar brought the rifle up and fired on the
run. Geran did the same, not with particular skill, but with dispatch; and more
fire came behind her, with the mahen official screaming for them to take cover.
Khym shouted, something: the heights distorted it, twisted it into a
blood-crazed roar. A volley of smoke-bounced shots came back from kif near the
wreckage and Pyanfar dived aside, remembered Khym behind her with one
heart-stopping fright and rolled to cover his blind rush.
But he came skidding in beside her, gasping, with the pistol quickly braced up
hunting targets as Tirun reached their cover. Geran and Haral had tucked in with
the mahendo'sat next a stack of cans: shots spattered the plastic and those
three ducked.
Then a flurry opened up from the other side, and for a moment the pop of
projectile fire rang everywhere off the overhead: mahen voices yowled distant
satisfaction and she put her head out, sprawled back again because shots were
wild and going a dozen ways about the wreckage and up the dock to their
position.
Geran got off three quick shots from her side, Haral another burst. "That's
mahen fire!" Haral yelled, seeing something from her vantage; and Pyanfar
ventured another look, saw fire going the other way and pelted out of cover the
last long sprint for the wreckage, from which cover a steady spatter of fire
went out aimed the other way.
Mahe braced in among the tangle started at their arrival, and hani among them
turned about with backlaid ears. Ehrran.
Pyanfar slid in among them, grabbed an Ehrran shoulder and shook it as Geran
arrived, and the rest of the crew. "Where's Chanur?" Pyanfar shouted into the
Ehrran crewwoman's baeklaid ears. "Where, gods rot you!"
The Ehrran pointed mutely to a hani lying on the deck and Pyanfar's heart
lurched over as Geran scrambled that way, to her sister's side. "Where's the
rest?" Pyanfar yelled, and a larger hani arm appeared from behind her and seized
a fistful of Ehrran beard. "Where are they?" Khym shouted, and the Ehrran waved
a frantic hand toward the dock at large.
"--Ran -- they ran -- Somewhere out there--" Pyanfar let go her grip with a
shove and abandoned the Ehrran to get to Chur.
Chur was alive. They had propped her head off the deck and the wound that had
spread blood all about was hard-sealed and glistening with plasm that stopped
further bleeding. Geran bent over her, just holding her hand, looking more than
scared.
"How is she?" Pyanfar asked.
"She hurts," Chur said for herself, past scarcely moving jaws. Her eyes were
slitted. "Where's Hilfy-Tully?"
"We don't know. Where'd you lose them?"
A weak move of Chur's head. A try at pointing. "Got out," she said. The pointing
was nowhere in particular. "Don't know."
Pyanfar looked round at the others who hovered near. "That packet. Tully had it
in his hands. Hunt the wreck."
"Got," Chur said thickly, reached feebly behind her head, delirious, Pyanfar
thought, until she recognized the thing Chur's head was lying on. Chur tried to
pull it. Tully's plastic sack.
"Gods," Pyanfar said with feeling. "Geran. Stay with her. You hang onto that.
They'll get an ambulance in here real soon."
"Not Kshshti," Chur said. "Pride."
For a moment Pyanfar failed to understand her, then gripped her arm. "No way we
leave you here. Got that?"
"Got," Chur said, and let her eyes close.
"Stay with her," Pyanfar said to Geran. "We'll find them." She stood up, keeping
low, for there were still shots flying, drew Tirun and Khym and Haral off to the
mahen position. She seized one by the arm and pulled him about. "Hani. Seen
hani?"
"No got," he said.
"Alien?"
"No got."
She edged back again, cast about amid the confusion of arriving emergency
vehicles, the thunder of PA above sirens, each confounding the other. Evacuate,
she made out. Evacuate, evacuate -- unsafe--
--getting the non-involved clear. She hoped. Possibly the whole sector of the
station had gone unstable in the explosions. In the mahen-language shouting and
the noise of the sirens there was no knowing. She put her head up, for firing
had stopped, ducked down again as her own crew pulled her down, but there were
still no shots.
"Think they're through out there," she said, and seized Haral by the arm. "Get
Chur into an ambulance. Geran's not to leave her. Whatever."
"Right," Haral said; he turned to leave and froze, so that Pyanfar turned to
look too, where hani had appeared among the emergency vehicles, some
black-trousered, several blue, the first sight of which lifted her hope and the
second dashed it.
"Ayhar," she spat, and hurled herself to her feet. "Ehrran!" -- for Rhif Ehrran
was in that group, and she headed for them in mingled wrath and hope, dodged
round a stretcher crew and a fire-control team headed into the wreckage. Hani
faces turned her way, Banny Ayhar and Rhif Ehrran chiefest of them.
"Chanur!" Ehrran shouted, headed her way, "By the gods, Chanur, you've really
fouled it up, haven't you?"
She slowed to a walk, with long, long strides. A hand caught her arm and she
jerked free.
"Captain," Tirun begged her. "Don't.
She stopped. Stood there. And Ehrran had the sense to stop out of her reach.
Tirun was on one side of her, Khym on the other.
"Where are they?" she asked Ehrran.
"Gods if I know," Ehrran said, hand on that pistol at her side. The whites
showed at the edges of her eyes. "Gods rot it, Chanur--"
"Be some use. We need searchers. They may have taken cover somewhere, anywhere
along the docks."
Ehrran flicked her ears nervously, turned and lifted a hand in signal to her
own. "Fan out. Watch yourselves."
"Move," Pyanfar said to her own, and they did.
Hilfy moved a finger, a hand, discovered consciousness and remembered kif, with
the kif-stink all about her. She tried the whole arm, both arms, a deep panicked
breath, and opened her eyes on a gray ceiling and bare steel and lights, with
the memory of a jolt she had not fully heard, with her arms tangled in
something, her legs pinned -- the wreck -- o gods --
She turned her head, a dizzy haze of lights, a bright spot of light with kif
clustered round something pale on a table, something pale and human-sized.
She heaved, met restraints that held her to a surface. Blankets wrapped her arms
about, and they had her fastened about that. She heard another clank of
machinery, shieldings in retraction, all the familiar sounds, watched the kit
cast an anxious look up and go back to their work -- Clank! Thump!
Ship sounds. It was the grapple-disengage. The kif stayed at work, clinging to
the table on which Tully lay when the G stress shifted. There were hisses, the
click of kifish speech. She shut her eyes and opened them again and the
nightmare remained true.
Pyanfar stopped and looked about her, swung the rifle about as she heard someone
coming in this zone of wreckage and shot-out lights. Hani silhouette against the
lighted zone.
"Captain," Haral cried, and the echoes went up. "Captain--" Her first officer
gasped for breath and stopped, leaning on a gantry leg. "Harukk just left dock.
Mahendo'sat just sent word. . . ."
She said nothing. Nothing seemed adequate. She only slung the rifle to her
shoulder and started running for the center of the search, for what help there
was to find.
* * *
They had left. "Tully," Hilfy said. The G stress was considerable, and it was
hard to breathe; the kif had beat that out the door, gone somewhere for
protection, but they had left Tully lying there on the table, no blanket,
nothing against the cold. "Tully--"
But he did not move. She gave over trying to rouse him. They had patched the
worst, she reckoned. They were headed for long acceleration, for jump, and they
wanted their prisoner to stay alive that long.
She, she reckoned, was quite another matter. Against Chanur, quite a number of
kif had a score to settle.
"Going where? She built the map in her head. Kefk, likeliest. Kefk, inside kif
territory. They could do that in one jump.
The whole ship jolted. Hit, she thought with one wild hope that someone,
somehow, had moved to stop it; but the G grew worse then, incredibly worse. The
ship had dumped cargo, no, not even cargo: she remembered Harukk, the sleek
wicked lines of her docked at Meet-point. It was the false pods that had just
blown, and stripped Harukk down to the hunter-ship she was.
Nothing could catch her now.
"How long ago?" Pyanfar shouted at the messenger, and the tall mahe backed up a
step.
"Soon ago, soon." The mahe laid hands on his chest. "I messenger, hani captain,
got com shot up, come office Personage give me same, say bring you."
Pyanfar took a swing at nothing in particular, turned away and found Rhif Ehrran
in her path.
"Well, Chanur? Got any brilliant plan?"
"If you weren't down here on the dock, if you hadn't left the only ship fit to
chase them sitting crewless, you gods-rotted fool--!"
"To do what? Chase a hunter-ship to Kefk? You're the fool, Chanur. There'll be a
full report. Believe me that there will."
"Py, don't!" It was Khym who got her arm in time and dragged her back, so it was
too late to do it at white heat. She straightened herself, stared at the Ehrran
whose crew had moved in to back their captain.
"Captain," a mahe said, moving in. "Captain, Personage want see, quick, please
quick. Got car."
She shoved the rifle at Khym, turned and followed the mahe across the littered
deck. She was aware of Haral with her, Tirun, Khym hastening to catch up.
"Chanur." A hani voice, a portly hani moving up from the side. "Chanur--" Banny
Ayhar caught her arm and tried to stop her.
She flung the hand off. "Get out of my way, Ayhar. Go lick Ehrran's feet."
"Listen, Chanur." Ayhar caught her arm with force this time and thrust her bulk
in the way. "I'm sorry! You want passage?"
She stopped dead and stared at Banny Ayhar's broad face.
"She hire you?"
"No."
"Who did?"
"See here, Chanur--"
Pyanfar walked off.
Chapter Nine
The lift let them out where Tully and Hilfy should have gotten to, in the upper
security levels, where guards looked nervous at the appearance of a clutch of
blood-stained hani armed with rifles, and one of them a male.
But doors opened for them unquestioned, doors upon doors of Kshshti's
utilitarian architecture, gray steel, heavy security, armed guards at intervals.
Stars and dark: Pyanfar lost the sight in front of her for that, remembrance of
the kif hunter-ship in dock at Meetpoint, sleek, deadly, fast; of a ship
outbound to Kshshti nadir and the jump range at a greater and greater fraction
of C. She went there the guard motioned, went where doors parted.
The last let them into a dim chamber with a plasteen division, with violet light
beyond. On the white-lit side, a desk and two mahendo'sat. On the violet one, a
huge serpent-form, which moved and shifted restlessly before the waist-up glass.
Tc'a. The sight of the methane-breather shocked her to an involuntary stop. The
barrier looked frail, the presence hani were accustomed to see only on vid and
dimly, showed detail that made it seem all too imminent: wrinkled, soft-leather
skin with phosphor-glow in the gold, eyespots large as a fist, five of them
clustered round a complex trifold mouth/sensor. The tongue darted, constantly.
The body shifted to this side and that, which tc'a always did.
"Esteemed captain." The Voice spoke, uncharacteristically subdued. "I present
the Personage Toshena-eseteno, stationmaster this side Kshshti; the Personage
Tt'om'm'mu, stationmaster methane side."
"Honorables," Pyanfar murmured. The tc'a alone deserved the plural, several
times over; and gods help psychologists.
The leathery serpent-shape loomed closer, twisted to peer through the glass with
its five orange eyespots. A wailing came through, five-voiced, from a brain of
multiple parts, as a monitor below the glass displayed the glowing matrix:
TC'A TC'A HANI HANI MAHE KIF KIF
CHI CHI STAY STAY STAY GO GO
UNITY UNITY ANGER ANGER ANGER GO GO
STAY STAY STAY STAY STAY GO MESSAGE
"Thank the tc'a Personage. What message?"
"Kif." The mahen Personage rose slowly from the desk, robes falling into order,
severe robes unlike the display of Personages elsewhere. He held out a paper
with his own hand, and she took it. "This come," the Personage said, not through
the Voice, "from Harukk. All three kif ship outbound. We got two mahe ship
chase."
"Shoot?"
"No shoot."
She held a small, horrid doubt whether they should have refrained, hostages or
no. For the hostages' sake. If it were The Pride in pursuit- but she pushed that
thought away. Unfolded the paper.
Hunter Pyanfar, it said. When the wind blows one should spread nets. Mine was
fortunate for us both. Should your sfik insist to meet with me, Mkks is neutral
ground. There you may reclaim what is yours.
"He's got them," she said for the crew's benefit. She gave the paper to Haral.
Mkks. Disputed Zones. Not Kefk, in kif territory.
Bait. Where she could reach it.
"I make order," the Personage said, "mahe ship track this kif. Go Mkks. Try use
influence."
"Influence. How much influence, when a kif s got what he wants?"
The Personage made a small, casting-away gesture. Pyanfar stood there with her
pulse hammering in her ears and no trust at all. Nothing, where they crossed the
mahe's interest.
"You follow this kif?" the Personage asked. "Or you go Maing Tol?"
Which gets my ship fixed, Honorable? But she did not say that. She cast a look
toward the glass where the tc'a dipped and wove aimless patterns. Back then to
the mahendo'sat in his ascetic robes. "You have a suggestion?"
The Personage lasped into mahen language.
"Hani captain," the Voice said, "kif use proverb mean he got result from
confusion someone else. Maybe not plan. Got maybe other motive. This
Sikkukkut--" The Voice shifted footing and put her hands behind her. "Forgive.
Not got polite hani word. Hatonofa, He look get number-one position."
"I know the word. I don't know this kif. No one knows a kif, but another kif."
Another exchange between Personage and Voice.
"Personage," said the Voice, "want make delicate this. I confess lack skill."
"Say it plain. I'll add the courtesy."
"Ask what else you got this kif want."
"I don't know."
The tc'a made a sound.
CHI TC'A HANI KIF KIF KIF
STAY WARN DATA WANT GOT WANT
TC'A KSHSHTI MKKS MKKS KEFK AKKT
FEAR WARN DIE TAKE TAKE TAKE
"Information," Toshena-eseteno translated that.
"What's the Kefk and Akkt mean?"
The screen went dark and stayed that way.
"What's it mean?" she asked the mahe.
"Not clear." The Personage walked to the glass and laid his hand on it. "Not
always clear, tc'a colleague. Warn you. Got warn you. Crew -- already work
repair you ship. Where go?"
She gnawed her mustache. "Twenty hours."
"Maybe do better."
The screen lit again. The serpent wailed.
CHI TC'A CHI KNNN HANI HANI MAHE
TC'A HANI HANI HANI SAME OTHER OTHER
KSHSHTI KSHSHTI KSHSHTI KSHSHTI KSHSHTI KSHSHTI KSHSHTI
MKKS MKKS MKKS MKKS MKKS MKKS KSHSHTI
SEE SEE SEE SEE GO DIE STAY
DANGER DANGER DANGER THREAT DANGER DANGER DANGER
"What threat?" Pyanfar asked. The matrix had potential to be read in any
direction. The computer picked it out of the harmonics and no sequence was
certain. "Knnn? What hani die? Present or future?" The tc'a reared back from the
glass.
AVOID AVOID AVOID AVOID AVOID AVOID AVOID
"Is that the answer or the reaction?" The tc'a dipped and weaved. A chi
skittered up into view from below the glass, a hani-sized bundle of rapidly
moving sticks phosphoresced in the violet light. It clambered up the tc'a
wrinkled side and clung there, touching with frenetic quivers of its limbs.
The Compact's sixth alleged intelligence. Or a tc'a symbiont. No one had figured
that out.
DANGER DANGER DANGER DANGER DANGER DANGER DANGER
"Still, be still." The mahen Personage lifted his hands to the violet glow,
turned about against the light. His ears were back. The light glistened in a
halo about him; his profile was shadowed, featureless.
"One broke out of Meetpoint," Pyanfar said. "Knnn. Tc'a too. There was trouble
there. Haven't seen it since."
"Knnn come, go. No one ask."
"Might be here, you mean."
"Knnn business. Not talk this."
"They snatched the human ships."
"Not talk this!" The Personage turned to face her, totally shadow now.
She flicked her ears and lifted her head in one long grudging breath.
"Apologies." A second, shorter breath. The air seemed close. "I'd better go,
Honorable."
"Where you go?" the Personage asked. "Maing Tol? Mkks?"
"You want to tell me which?"
"I say, you not listen, true?"
Not dull-witted. No.
And not, adding up the asked and not-asked, not knowing everything Goldtooth had
planned or done. Maybe the wavefront of that information was one lonely hani
ship. Or maybe Maing Tol had not trusted Kshshti security.
Coils within coils within coils. To pull the snake's tail one had to know which
end was which.
"I got orders," Pyanfar said, "mahe who gave me this job. He trust. You?"
The Personage said something the Voice did not render, and turned and gazed at
Tt'om'm'mu. The tc'a and chi were otherwise occupied, the chi busy waving its
limbs over the tc'a's leathery hide. Speech, maybe. No oxy-breather knew.
The mahe turned round again. "You go where choose. Got no bill, no dock charge.
Kshshti give."
"Gratitude."
The mahe joined his hands in courtesy. The tc'a Tt'om'm'mu -- remained occupied.
"Hurts," Chur murmured. Her eyes cleared somewhat, looking up at them clustered
about her bed. "Want--" The rest of it faded out.
"Sedation's pretty heavy," Geran said, leaning forward from her low stool at the
bedside to brush at her sister's mane. Pyanfar nodded, hands within her belt.
Geran had gotten the news outside the door, knew the contents of the message.
"Good treatment here. Kshshti medics get a lot of practice."
It was a joke, desperately delivered. Eyes still closed, Chur gave a twitch of a
smile, as forced as the joke. "Get me out of here, captain. Gods-rotted dull
port."
"Get your rest." Pyanfar leaned over and closed her hand on Chur's arm. "Hear?
We'll be back."
"Where's Hilfy? Tully?" Chur's eyes opened, far sharper than she had thought.
"You find them?"
"We're working on it."
"Gods rot." Chur moved, a stir of her whole body. "Where are they?"
"Go to sleep. Don't move about like that."
"Something's wrong."
"Chur." Geran slipped a hand in and held her arm. "Captain's got work to do. Go
back to sleep."
"In a mahen hell. What's the news?"
There was no lying about it. Not to Chur. Not likely. The blood pressure would
go up and up. She would worry at it. "Mkks," Pyanfar said. "Kif snatched them
both. One Sikkukkut. Says he's talking deal. Wants us to go to Mkks to meet
him."
"O gods."
"Listen." She held Chur's arm, hard. "Listen. It's not hopeless. We've got help
from the mahendo'sat. We'll get them back. Both."
"You going to let the mahendo'sat do it?"
She hesitated on that answer. Gave it up for the second truth. "Haral and Tirun
and I. We can handle The Pride. They're going on the repairs."
Chur's ears went down against the pillow. Her eyes were shut. "Promised. You."
"Can't do it. Can't do it now."
"Tomorrow. I'll be there. At the ship. Geran too."
"You rest."
"Huhhhhnn." Chur's eyes flashed open. "Patch will hold. I'll stand jump just
fine. Captain."
Pyanfar stood back, met Geran's eye.
"See you at the ship," Geran said.
Pyanfar laid her ears back. "Listen." She set a hand on Geran's shoulder and
drew her aside.
253
C. /. Cherryh
"We can handle it, much as we can do. Gods-rotted place to be left. Stay with
her, huh ?"
"Then what?"
Shipless. Two hani, stranded. She had no answer for that.
"See you," Geran said.
One hani left behind. No better. Chur without Geran. They had never been apart,
never looked to be. It was a final shock, in what sense remained unnumbed.
"See you." She dropped the hand and turned to gather up Tirun and Haral. Khym
stood by the door. No rifles. They had left those outside with a nervous stsho
medic and scrubbed up in a washroom. But the stench of smoke still hung about
their clothes. Strong soap and smoke. The smell turned her stomach. "Come on.
Better let her rest. --Chur. You take it easy, hear? We'll fix it. Trust us for
it."
Asleep, she reckoned.
"Captain." Geran bent beside the bed and picked up a white plastic sack. Washed,
since Chur had had it beneath her head. "It's in there. Packet's intact."
"Huh." She took the white bundle and tucked it within her arm. Kif would have
killed for it, would have wiped the station to get it -- if they knew. The
stationmasters themselves had not known. Knew comparatively little, all things
considered. "Thank her, huh?"
She laid the sack on the bridge counter, lacking the heart to delve into the
personal things. She drew the packet from it and checked inside.
Intact. Rumpled papers. Recordings protected in their cases. She put the lot
into security storage, closed the coded latch.
Sounds reverberated through the hull, horrendous sounds from aft as skimmers
performed their work and cut away the stern assemblies. The shocks went through
the very frame as a third of The Pride's length was sheared away. "Py. Captain."
She looked up and back. Khym was standing there.
"You didn't mention me -- when you talked about crew going to Mkks."
"Khym--"
"I can fetch and carry. I can scrub galley. Lets skilled crew free. Doesn't it?"
Protective instincts rose up. Another image did. Khym's arm between her and the
Ehrran; Khym, whose mind had gone on working when hers quit.
"Good job," she said, "that business on the docks." She walked past him, patted
him gently on the arm.
"Captain."
Not Py. . . . She looked back, saw rage, and hurt.
"For godssakes don't dismiss me with that.'"
She stood there, trying to recall what she had said or done. "I'm tired," she
said. "I'm sorry."
He managed nothing, no answer.
"You want to go," she said, "gods rot it, you're in. Get killed with the rest of
us. Happy?"
"Thanks," he said flatly. In a hostile tone.
She turned and walked off. It was the best way, when his tempers got obscure.
Gods defend him. Fool.
He was fond of Hilfy, that was what. Age got on him and he doted on
daughter-images, remembering his own. Theirs. Tahy. Who had been no defense to
him against her brother. Hilfy respected him. Called him na Khym. Fixed special
things for him and pampered him the way he was accustomed.
Gods rot.
She reached the galley, delved into cabinets and threw gfi into the brewer,
feeling the wobble in her knees. She had not cleaned up, except the scrub at the
hospital. She did not care to now, wanting only something on her stomach.
"Fix that for you?" Khym offered, having followed her. "Sit down, Py."
Her arm tautened to slam the unit lid down. She lowered it carefully and looked
around, bland as he was. "Galley's all yours."
"How much did you put in?"
"One."
He added more, going quietly about his business, So he had created a place for
himself, and truth, if he freed up crew on this one, he was useful.
Whatever they were doing to the tail rose to a distant shriek.
"Py." He offered the cup and she took it. He poured the rest, capped them, to
deliver where Haral and Tirun were.
But Haral showed up, bathed and with her blue coarse breeches still showing wet
spots, her mane and beard hanging in ringlets. She had a paper in her hand.
"That mine?" she asked of the gfi, and laid down the paper in front of Pyanfar.
"That came in."
Pyanfar looked at it. Sipped thoughtfully at the gfi.
Ehrran's Vigilance, Rhif Ehrran captain, deputy of the han, Immune, to The Pride
of Chanur, Pyanfar Chanur captain, chief vessel Chanur company:
This will serve as legal notice a complaint will be filed regarding breach of
Charter, section 5: willful disregard of lawful order; section 12: hire of
vessel; section 22: illegal cargo; section 23: illegal arms; section 24:
discharge of arms; section 25: actions in breach of treaty law; section 30. . .
.
She looked up as Khym left on his errand. "They missed the illegal system
entry."
Haral gave a short, dry laugh and sat down. The Pride shuddered to operations
aft, and the humor died a rapid death.
"We answer that?"
"Fills the time." She drew a deep breath. "Sleep, rest, plot course. We take for
granted they'll get us out of here."
Haral's eyes drifted to the clock. Hers too, irresistibly.
"Tully," Hilfy murmured. The Gforce kept on. Her nose bubbled with every breath;
some blood vessel had popped inside, adding misery upon misery. Her hurts
throbbed, and might be pouring blood, but she could not tell and the cocooning
blanket would soak it up.
Tully was still out. She talked to him periodically, in the chance he should
have waked, to let him know one friend was with him. But he did not respond.
Possibly they had taped a drug patch to him to keep him under. Perhaps he had
just failed to come to. Instincts wanted to call for help and other instincts
remembered what would come and told her to keep her mouth shut and let him go if
he could.
They were headed for jump. And if he were awake he would be terrified.
So was she, when she let her attention wander to herself. When she did that she
hoped there was a ship or two chasing them that would let off an unexpected shot
before they got to jump, and solve their problems at one stroke.
Think of anything but the place where they were going.
Think of Pyanfar, who was likely taking the station authorities apart and
telling them what to do about it, which thought gave her a surge of hope; and
Haral -- she pictured Haral sitting in that chair whose upholstery she had worn
out and turning round just so, with that unflappable calm that never broke, not
even when in her first tour she had made a dangerous mistake.
Want to fix that? Haral would say.
O gods, she wished she could.
The thrust died of a sudden, just died, in one stomach-lurching shift to
inertial.
Prep for jump.
"Harukk's left," Tirun said, when the word came in. "That's 43 minutes light,
station-center. Pursuit ship relayed image. Jumped . . . about an hour and
fifteen ago."
Timelag, Tirun meant: reporting time was in that, what ship scan could pick up
and relay, beating the beacon report by a few minutes.
Pyanfar nodded, kept working on the course plottings, a great deal of it futile
until they had the readout on the new rig. When it got finished.
When.
"That's affirmative on Mkks vector."
"Huh." Her hands shook. She flexed her claws out and in and powered the chair
about, taking a look at the work aft, which their dome camera was fixed on. She
flinched inwardly at the sight, The Pride stripped of her familiar outlines.
There was a new unit moving in. They had the transmissions from the pusher. And
getting ship and tail unit joined was only the roughest beginning of the matter,
a matter of preparing disconnect-ravaged surfaces for new welds. Hard-suited
workers showed like sparks in the working floods, like a swarm of insects where
they had backed off for that unit's arrival. Service-corn frequency was never
silent, crackling with chiso, the mahen patois that bridged their scores of
languages, easier than trade-tongue for mahendo'sat.
"I'm going to get some rest," she said, for the smothering weight of all of it
came down at once, and getting herself out of the chair and down the corridor
loomed as a major undertaking.
"Call Haral up when you have to."
"Aye," Tirun said. Not an expression, not a question what they were going to do
or how.
She appreciated that.
Time did twists now. In one fashion she could relax, because for the next
stationside several weeks Harukk and its company were in the between, in the
compression of hyper-light, where everything was in suspension and nothing would
start again until the Mkks gravity well took hold. Two weeks at least, in which
everything was stopped. No pain. No fear. Nothing, til they came out again.
But Tully needed drugs for that gravity-drop, needed them like stsho needed
them. Perhaps kif knew this. Perhaps they cared to keep him sane.
Better, perhaps, if he was not.
She waked, suddenly, caught at the edge of the sleeping-bowl and realized she
was not falling, despite the thumping of her heart. She rolled and looked at the
clock and punched the lights on and the com connection. The hammering was
silent. That had waked her.
"Bridge, gods rot it, it's 0400!"
"Aye, captain." Haral's voice. "Nothing's going on. Thought we'd let you sleep."
"Uhhhnn." She leaned her elbow on the bed-edge. "That tail set?"
"They're welding now."
"They're not going to make that deadline."
"They've got techs working on the boards already. They're pushing it."
"Gods." She let her head down on her arm, feeling as if a wall had come down on
her yesterday and some of the bricks still lay there. Lifted it again. "How's
Chur?"
"Geran called, says she's doing all right. They both got a little sleep."
"Huh. Good."
"Got a call from Vigilance. They got our paper. Ehrran's chewing sticks."
"Good."
"Got a pot of something fixed in galley."
Her stomach rebelled. "Fine." She passed a hand over her face, rubbing her eyes.
"I'm coming." She punched the com off, rolled out and sat on the bed edge trying
to convince her legs to work.
Gods, Hilfy. Tully. That settled back on her shoulders. There was the packet in
the security bin. There was Tt'om'm'mu's writhing shape in its violet glow and
the mahendo'sat, together against the glass (don't ask about the knnn) and
mahendo'sat making vital connections on her ship, when mahendo'sat incompetency
had let kif do as they pleased.
Incompetent? Kshshti stationmaster, and no better than that?
Suspicions had tramped her subconscious half the night, rose up in memories of
dreams of a kif in the shadows of that room. Of delicate connections in the
column links, some mahen technician carefully making a sequence of mistakes that
would send false readout to the boards. Gods, what if--
A body could go crazy on what-ifs. Like treachery from Goldtooth from the start.
Like Vigilance being in the right -- for hani interests. Like Chanur on the
wrong side of matters and about to become expendable in some mahen intrigue.
Or traitorous.
She got up, showered, dressed in a subdued way, a pair of old breeches she saved
for rough work. No earrings but the plain ones, such as any spacer wore.
Khym had done much the same, in a pair of silk breeches that had seen the
Meetpoint riot and would never be the same. He met her in the galley with gfi
and a dish of something overspiced-not good at cookery either. But the job got
done and the stuff was far from fatal.
"Good," she said, to please him, and coupled with that was the ugly thought that
nothing mattered much, beyond Mkks. Tomorrow. Their tomorrow, and their next
tomorrow, when they would come out the other side of jump.
How much time-gain for a hunter-ship like Harukk and its ilk? Days faster than
The Pride at absolute best. HaruJdc would be in port at Mkks as much as a week
by the time their day-after-tomorrow came, and they spent time working up to
dock at Mkks, and all the attendant nonsense. If they got that far.
She shivered, swallowed an overspiced last mouthful and washed it down with gfi.
Her ears kept going down despite herself. She pricked them up. Looked Khym's
way. "There's a procedures list in comp," she said to him. "Checklist."
"Got it," he said, displaying a paper on the countertop. Gods, efficiency. She
poured the whole matter out of her mind and got up and walked off.
Maybe -- maybe the kif would hold off in Hilfy's case, until they had used the
bait for everything they could get. Not Tully. No. Not with a chance to pull
information about all humankind from him, and a week to do it in. The first time
kif had had their hands on him he had had a word or two he could speak, and a
handful more he could understand, and never admitted either to the kif.
Now he could get a hani sentence out. And Sikkukkut had fluency.
"Captain," Haral said when she walked out on the bridge. "Got a request from the
repair chief. They want to get column access from inside. I told them go ahead.
I'm opening lower deck for that."
"Get their security down there." The thought of outsiders straying at random
through The Pride's interior workings set her nerves on edge. But they were out
of personnel. Out. Totally.
"Second item," Haral said. "A freighter turned up about 0300 last watch in
approach to 29.
Our scan's been down. It just turned up, blink, on station output, at the
one-zone. I didn't think it was worth waking you, but I queried station. They
identified it as Eishait, said it came in during the Harukk business and
security had it scan-blocked. I queried Prosperity. They had their scan shut
down. They're too far round the curve for the cameras to help. I put in a call
to Vigilance, begging your pardon--"
"They get it?"
Haral dipped her ears. "They said, quote, they had no authority to release
information. I suggested they wake their captain. They suggested I wake you."
She drew a tight slow breath and leaned against the counteredge nearest the
doorway.
"At that point," Haral said, "it was committed to dock and I figured there
wasn't all that much to do about it that fast. Stationmaster's office stuck by
the Eishait story. I called Prosperity back and suggested one of them take a
walk down that way." "Should have waked me, gods rot it." "Prosperity agreed.
They say it's all security down there. Can't get past. Our work crew never
stopped back there, no sign of any concern while that ship was inbound.
Meanwhile there's nothing kifish on com. I think it's a mahen hunter."
"Not friendly of station not to say. Wouldn't you think?"
"Worries me," Haral said. "Whole gods-forsaken place worries me." Her eyes
shifted minutely aft, by implication including the repair work. Back again. "You
still want that mahen security on our access?"
The breakfast lay uneasy at her stomach. "Put them on it. They're all we've got.
And log those exchanges."
"They're logged." Haral powered her chair about and punched into the station
comlink. "Kshshti central, this is the watch officer, from the bridge, The Pride
of Chanur. . . . Get me dock security."
Pyanfar stood away from the counter and looked left as Tirun came shambling in
half asleep and nodded a courtesy.
"Morning," she said to Tirun. "Chur's doing fine. Get some breakfast."
"Huh," Tirun said, and went, blindly trustful. Down on lowerdeck they had a lock
about to open.
Pyanfar sat down in Tirun's place at bridge ops, conscious of the pistol she
kept in her pocket, its weight swinging against her leg. She started locking
doors, putting the lift on key/bridge operation only, sealing every hold access
but the necessary one that would get work crews to The Pride's vitals.
"Security's coming," Haral said.
* * *
Mahen workers came and went, an occasiona splatter of bare running feet, a rush
of blacl and brown mahen bodies in the lower corri dors carrying this and that
item the tech: wanted -- honest mahendo'sat, Pyanfar con vinced herself. She
came down to see the faces, to judge reactions, and the earnest look of the
workers reassured her. Their speed reassurec her, and the surprised reflexes of
respect. Some recognized her, blue breeches and all as she took the tour through
ops, where mahen techs ran checks. Above, aft, the first new vane pane was
moving up in the careful grasp of a pusher-ship, and suited mahendo'sat prepared
the column to receive it.
It was a hundred ten panels wide to the old ninety and looked monstrous large.
The olc drive could not have pushed it. The old drive The Pride's old heart, had
gone off in the clutches of a mahen pusher and a new, mahen-made unit was
coupled to the ship's alloy spine, struts recoupled -- as good amputate a part
of her, and put back some fancy foreign part. She watched the floods sparkle
bright off the panel rim and glisten off the black panel surfaces as the pusher
turned. A shiver prickled up her back, worry about telemetry complications,
systems that might not mesh and set them, further back, despite the Voice's
assurances. Topside, Tirun ran calculations and more calculations, had the
third, this time sulphurous request in for raw specifications on the individual
units. . . . "Make soon," the reply had come back from the supervisor, "give
composite." And when Tirun objected that: "Got get security dear give that
information."
"Good gods!" Tirun had screamed into com. "It's part of our ship, you
gods-rotted lunatic!"
"I make request," the supervisor said.
Meanwhile the panel was moving in, and mahendo'sat ran their own checks in ops;
and things felt -- marginally in control. Not just the unit back there on the
tail. The bill. The finance.
Nine tenths of The Pride's physical value, excluding her licenses and rights --
and mahendo'sat picked up the tab.
Foreign hire. Vigilance had made that charge already. They were down there
logging everything. There would be inquiry.
The han would have questions.A lot of questions. If they lived through Mkks.
She turned from the screens, walked past a cluster of chiso-babbling mahendo'sat
who had their own instruments linked into auxiliary sockets on the ops board,
headed out in the hall for fresh air. They had the place chilled down for the
mahendo'sat. The hall was frigid. A cold draft wafted in from the lower lock,
with the flavor of Kshshti docks, oil and old beer and mahendo'sat as she passed
that corridor. Workmen in their orange coveralls came in, some went out. She
pursued her way to the lift.
Hilfy. The thought came nudging in whenever she let it, and she pushed it away.
"Captain," mane said. "Come."
She stopped, blinked at the workman who beckoned her to the lock, opened her
mouth to refuse that imprudence, but the mane had flitted around the turn again,
hasty as every mahe was hereabouts.
Some gods-rotted supervisor with questions. Her ship. Her access. She refused
the jangling of her nerves and went after the workman. But her hand was in her
pocket as she walked into the lock.
No one. She spun a look over her shoulder, looked back again as something dark
came into her way, mahe-tall and spacer-ringed with gold.
Her finger tautened, hand cocked to aim through cloth and all. "Pyanfar!" the
mahe cried, flinging up both hands; and the finger stopped.
"Jik!" she gasped, and her heart started up again. The mahe still held his hands
up till she had gotten hand from pocket. "Where'd you come from?" And then she
knew. "That's Aia Jin in 29, isn't it?"
"Same." Jik still looked nervous. "Make quick come here. Got trouble, huh?"
She looked him up and down., this lank solitary mahe with enough gaud in his
dress to turn a hani envious. "Jik." It seemed half the troubles in the universe
fell off her shoulders. "O gods. About time. About gods-rotted time, hear me?"
He flung up his hands again, pleading for quiet. She grabbed him by the arm and
pulled him back toward the lift. "Come in here like this," she muttered, fishing
up the key. She stuck it in. "Dressed like that." The lift doors hissed wide.
"Get in." She snatched him inside, this mahe a third again her size. He leaned
against the lift wall as it shot them up topside and the door shot open.
Khym was in the hall. His mouth fell open at the sight.
"Jik," Pyanfar identified him. "My husband, Khym. Old friend. Goldtooth's
partner. Come on, Jik."
Chapter 1O
Nomesteturjai was his name: captain Keia Nomesteturjai. Jik to tongue-bound
hani, this thin, anxious-looking mahe. "Sit," Pyanfar said and, spinning the
com-post chair about, backed Jik into it. She leaned on the counter and one
chair arm with not an arm's length between their noses. "Where's Goldtooth?"
"Not know sure."
"What, not know?"
Jik's dark eyes shifted uncomfortably at that range. "Think near Kefk."
"Kefk!"
"Not know sure." The eyes shifted back and forth, bloodshot-rimmed. "Not good
make guess."
"Gods and thunders, what are we in?"
"You go Mkks?"
She stood back. "Khym. Get him a hot drink, huh?" Gods. Him. A weary twitch went
through her nerves, a panic rage at biology.
But: "Aye," Khym said and went. Pyanfar sat down on the counter edge. Haral
settled one hip on the console near her station, to keep an eye to things, Tirun
slouched onto the padded arm of observer two.
"We talk," Pyanfar said. "Real slow. You understand me."
"Not sleep," Jik said, wiping a lank, blunt-clawed hand over his face. His
shoulders slumped. "God, lousy course change Urtur system."
"It took us out," Pyanfar said. "Come on, Jik. What's going on out there? Hilfy
and Tully are headed for Mkks, Chur's in hospital, they're dicing up my ship,
the Personage says he's sorry and don't discuss the knnn I've had on my tail."
The arm went stiff in mid-motion, eyes fixed on hers. "Knnn."
"Out of Meetpoint. Maybe to here. I don't know. Kshshti stationmasters are
nervous as stsho. What's going on?"
"Got kif take human ship. Human lot upset."
"Knnn take human ship, gods rot you, tell it straight! And I've got other news.
Ship named Ijir. The other courier with other humans. Kif got it."
"God." He leaned back against the leather seat, arms on either rest, and looked
at her. "How you know?"
"Message from Sikkukkut an'nikktukktin. Same as got Tully and Hilfy."
"He got Ijir?"
"Don't know."
Jik let go a deep long breath. His reddened eyes traveled up again as Khym
padded in with a tray. Khym offered him the first, stiffly courteous, and Jik
took it without a flinch. "We not meet. Both Gaohn station."
"Huh," Khym breathed, a grinding in his throat. But his ears came up with
interest. He passed cups around, kept one for himself and settled, silent --
gods, decorous -- on the arm of the com-station seat, empty tray aside on the
counter, quiet as Haral, as Tirun.
"Hunter ship," Pyanfar said for Khym's benefit, while Jik drank gfi and wrinkled
his nose, shuddering as he drank. Gfi was not a mahen favorite, but it was
substance and Jik seemed to need that. The strength looked to have drained out
of him as if he had run a long, long time. "Best pilot in mahen space," Pyanfar
said, not lying. "You talk to the stationmaster, Jik?"
Weary eyes lifted, guileless. "Go station center, talk." Another sip of gfi,
another small shudder and grimace at the taste. "Got ask you -- Pyanfar. Where
packet?"
She drew in a long, long sip of her own cup. "What packet?"
Jik swallowed hard. The gfi was hot and tears sprang to his eyes, which acquired
a heat of their own and a hard glitter of thought. "Bastard," he said. "No
game."
"It isn't. When they get my tail back working, huh? You know, it occurs to me
with Aia Jin in port they might take me off priority. They got hunter ship, huh?
Not need hani now."
"Fix."
"Sure, they will."
He sat there a moment, breathing in and out and a good deal more rapid going on
behind his eyes. "You got packet, huh? Kif got Tully, you got packet and you go
Mkks. What want? Give both to kif?"
"Maybe trade."
The least uncertainty crept into his expression. "No. You no do." It became
fear. "You got too much smart, Pyanfar."
"No," she said, gazing deep into his eyes. "I got friends. Don't I, Jik?"
He drew a breath, "You give packet. Damn, hani! You try hold this thing, Kshshti
authority board and take!"
"Stationmaster doesn't know it exists. Does he? Not Eseteno, not Tt'om'm'mu, not
our pink-slippered cutthroat Stle stles stlen. But you know. And the fewer know
it exists, the better. Don't you think?" She jabbed a claw at him, "How'd the
kif know to move that quick, to set up an ambush on the docks? How'd we get set
up, huh?"
"You say Stationmaster?"
"You say kif make lucky guess?"
"I know this Eseteno. No. No, Pyanfar. Not. He honest, long time got post. Trust
him."
"All right. That's one. But how far down the line does honest go? How much does
it take? Kif got some security agent's relatives, make deal, huh?"
Jik's dark face was very sober, ears down. "All time possible."
"Maybe same got agent repair crew, huh?"
"Kif want you go Mkks. Want blow ship there got lot chance. Not need sabotage."
It made sense. It was the cheerfullest reassurance she had had since the docks
blew up. She drew her mustache down, thinking on the odds.
"Give packet," Jik said. "Got go Maing Tol, this packet. I ask. Number one
important."
"Goldtooth's observations, is it? His report -- what's going on out there in kif
space. Knnn stuff too."
Jik's small ears went back. "You got no profit make guess, Pyanfar."
"I make deal. I trust my honest mahe friend.
That repair crew stays on the job and my engineer gets specs on those parts
number one quick."
"Got."
"Got authority, do you? Lot of authority, same as Goldtooth."
Jik's ears twitched. "Some thing yes."
"Some thing, huh? You want this packet, you go with me to Mkks."
"Hani, I guard you tail at Gaohn!"
"Guard it at Mkks and you get the packet."
Gently: "You bastard, Pyanfar."
"You same kind bastard. You say, you do. I know this."
"I go Mkks," he said.
"Get the packet, Haral."
Haral moved. Jik leaned back into the leather cushion and watched, bestirred
himself to take it when it came, this largish several-times crushed envelope
with a dark stain at one corner. "All here?" Jik asked.
"Everything they sent me. What are you going to do with it?"
"Try find honest captain."
"In this port? Stay away from the hani."
"A?" He looked her in the eyes and the ears sank slowly before they came up
again. The face had no fool's look, not now. "Trouble, huh?"
"Lot trouble."
"You come."
"Come where?"
"Come with. We talk these hani."
"No."
Jik stood up. "I go. Sure thing we talk. Want share?"
"Gods rot -- Gods rot it, I've got enough trouble! Leave my name out of it!"
"They got jealous, huh?"
"Look, look, you earless lunatic, there's laws, there's regulations I already
break-- The han's after my hide, you understand me? Chanur's got troubles! You
want to hand them proof, huh? It's illegal for me to work for foreign
government, understand? Against the conventions!"
"You carry cargo government give."
"That's legal. Gods rot it, you know the distinction. You trade, what time
you're not up to no good--"
"So you carry cargo." He lifted the packet. "Same legal."
"Look, look, Jik -- old friend. They're looking for an excuse. They want find
trouble, understand? You'll get us skinned, all of us."
"What choice got? Pyanfar, good friend, got no choice. Packet got go."
"Send it with the tc'a!"
Ears flicked. "No." Short and sharp, a small flicker in the eyes that rang
alarms. "Not number one good idea, Pyanfar."
More alarms. Methane-breathers, with their own interests. Tt'om'm'mu rearing up
behind his glass, violet and murky phosphorescences.
"You come," Jik said. "Maybe better you be there, huh, stop stupid mahe say
wrong thing these honest hani?"
"No! Absolutely no!" She got up, flung off across the bridge, waving her arms
and dislodging Khym from her path. She looked back again. Jik still stood there
with the packet in his hands and that Tully-look on his too-narrow mahen face.
"Pyanfar." He held up the envelope.
"No," she said.
"Chanur," the Ehrran said, Rhif, rising from a much-scarred and grimy chair.
KSHSHTI PORT AUTHORITY the office said on the outer door, in four different
alphabets with letters missing. CONFERENCE in three: the hani line had fallen
off altogether and left only brighter paint behind, misspelled.
"Ehrran," Pyanfar said. And with a glance at the other hani captain in the
narrow room: "Ayhar." Jik closed the door behind them both and they were all
alone with each other.
"You?" Ehrran asked of Jik. "The Personage send you here?"
"No," Jik said quietly, with unflappable good nature. "I ask Personage send
you."
It shot straight through Ehrran's guard and Pyanfar got a quick furtive breath
and swallowed it quick, straight-faced, watching the Ehrran's face.
Quick re-thinking, by the gods. Rhif Ehrran drew herself up, mouth not quite
closed, and then it did close, and the Ehrran stared closely at this
raffish-dressed mahe.
"Sit," Jik said, "captains, I ask you."
Pyanfar pursed her mouth and sat, watched first Banny Ayhar lower her portly
self into a grimy seat and then fastidious Ehrran, who looked as if she had a
mouthful of salt and no idea where to spit.
"What I got ask," Jik said, taking his own seat at the battered table, in this
despicable little office, "what I got ask-" He laid the rumpled envelope on the
table. "Need courier."
"Who needs?" The question got out past Ehrran's well-groomed mustaches. "I'd
like to see some Signature, if you don't mind."
"A." Jik bent a lank wrist toward his kilt belt, deftly whipped up a small
folder, spun it across the table. "That good?"
The Ehrran picked it up as if it had been charged, extruded claws to pull the
two leaves apart, and read something there that brought her head up and her ears
to level. She mutely flipped the holder closed and spun it back again. Jik
replaced it.
"Know you," he said. "Rhif Ehrran. Where you course?"
"Han business."
"A. Maybe got same business lot trouble kif. Maybe got invoke treaty."
"Maybe you can get Chanur to do your work."
"Maybe invoke treaty. Need you, Ehrran."
Ehrran's eyes smoldered. One claw came out, traced a pattern on the tabletop, a
clean green line amid the grime. "I've got business, mahe."
"So. Maybe got. I got. Got hani citizen with kif. Got hani shot up, a? No, I
tell you, ker Ehrran. You in mahen space, inside mahen agreement--" Jik held up
one blunt-clawed finger, forestalling a word from the Ehrran. "You here, a? I
call other side treaty, got number-one emergency, got need ship run courier--"
"You want to buy other hani?"
"Gods rot--!" Pyanfar straightened and a dark-furred mahen arm landed slam! on
the table between her and the Ehrran.
"I make request," Jik said. "Of-fi-cial, a? Treaty stuff. Now, we got
cooperative agreement, agreement like I tell you, Ehrran. You got say yes, say
no. You honor treaty?"
The ears were flat already, the fine fair nose rumpled, the eyes ruddy amber.
"What do you want?"
"You on hunt. Tell you this hunt go Mkks."
"Mkks!"
"Mkks, hani. Got other thing Ayhar do." He shoved the packet skidding at Ayhar's
startled grasp. "You got priority undock, captain. You got. You run damn fast.
Know you. Know you, Banny Ayhar. You got lot year, lot smart. I know, huh?"
Ayhar's ears sank. Her eyes showed white rims. "Where?" Ayhar asked.
"Maing Tol."
Banny Ayhar drew the packet up in her hands, drew her mouth down taut, not
without a shift of her eyes Ehrran's way. But Ehrran never looked. "No trouble,"
Ayhar said, all quiet.
"Good," Jik said. "You go. Go fast, ker Ayhar. You not talk, you not wait. Got
six rny crew see you get car, see you car get ship. Dock crew already work get
you out."
Ayhar stood up, the envelope still in her hands.
"You not open," Jik said.
"Gods be feathered if I want to," Ayhar muttered, and looked this way and that .
. . delayed then, with a look back. "Ker Pyanfar. You want that crewwoman
ferried out?"
"No," said Jik ahead of anything. "You run. Run hard. Not ask why. You not got
safety. Not got choice."
"See here--" But it faded. Whatever Ayhar had meant to say faded out. She looked
a moment at Jik and turned then, the envelope in her hands, and vanished out the
door.
Ehrran had gained her feet, ears flat. "Chanur," she said, "out."
Pyanfar leaned back and fixed Ehrran with a cold stare. "I'll stay, thanks. I
can sit proxy to Chanur's interests. Or is the mahen captain more privy to han
business than a member is? I'm here to witness. Formally."
Ehrran drew a long, long breath, and her eyes were dark-centered. Perhaps she
considered the recorders. "Kshshti's already had one security breach. . . ."
"My crew, my niece, my passenger, Ehrran. You want to talk to me about security
breach--"
"We'll settle that. Elsewhere. This action of yours-" Ehrran looked at Jik, with
no more pleasant face. "My course is Kefk."
Jik waved a loose, limp hand. "Now Mkks." The hand returned to his hip above the
gun and rested there. "Ten, maybe twelve hour. You think got business Kefk. No.
Lousy place, Kefk. You no go."
"To do what? To do what at Mkks?"
"You stay my tail, a? You dock left. Dock right, Chanur. Three number one
bastard go take walk Mkks docks, a?"
There was a long, long silence. Ehrran stood staring, hunter-fix. "Right,"
Ehrran said. "Ten hours. I'll trust this gets authorized higher up, na Jik."
She walked out, flat. The door whisked shut. "Pyanfar," Jik said, and gestured
that way, in Ehrran's wake.
"Huh." Pyanfar got up with a grimace, collected herself and followed Jik
outside, where three of his crew waited, all of them gaudy as Jik himself, even
toward raffish; guns carried openly. An abundance of gold chains and armlets,
and one had a knife.
"All done," Jik said, laying a hand on her shoulder, "got fix good, a?"
"Sure. Sure, fix." She looked round at him with her ears back. "Expensive fix,
friend. She won't forget."
"Got soul like kif, that hani."
"Number one right. What business? What's she after?"
The hand squeezed, a pressure of blunt claws. The mahe's dark eyes wrinkled
round their edges and looked only tired. "This Ehrran hunt hani ship. Not you,
no, she got rumor got hani work many side this thing. han lot upset. This Rhif
Ehrran, she want this renegade real bad. Think maybe you, a? han lot crazy. They
don't like the stsho make sudden clear paper, bring you to Meetpoint. Got lot
suspicion, the han. I tell you, Pyanfar, you got go home talk sense these hani."
"Who cleared those papers up?"
Jik pushed her doorward. She braced her feet.
"Who, gods rot it?"
"Goldtooth talk good stsho, got same treaty, a?"
"Stle stles stlen."
Jik rubbed the bridge of his nose, where an old scar showed gray. "Same got
Ayhar."
"What 'same got Ayhar'?"
"Stle stles stlen. Got somehow station damage charge, a? Got big bill, Ayhar.
Stsho seize Ayhar cargo."
"O gods."
"Lot scared, Banny Ayhar. Stsho send here, direct route, run courier old bastard
Stle sties stlen. Same come Vigilance. Same Stle stles stlen got long talk Rhif
Ehrran after you leave Meetpoint, a?"
"That eggsucker!"
"One scared hani, Ayhar."
"Gods rot. What's gtst after?" But ideas occurred to her. A certain bill. A
detailed report to the han sent by way of Vigilance.
And another thought muddled past, about timing, information and mahen interests.
"You came from Kura, huh? Sure, you did." Jik held up both hands. "Maybe come
Meetpoint. Forget these detail."
"Gods rot it, can't somebody tell the truth?"
"Lot truth."
"Sure." She jerked her arm as he laid a hand on it to move her on, and he gave
her all her reach for distance between them. "Sure," she said. "Maybe
fifty-fifty, huh? What happens now when I get outbound? Maybe have an accident?
-- Sorry, old friend? Repair crew made a mistake? Hope you enjoy the trip? Gods
rot--"
"No. Swear to you." Jik held up his hands again and dropped them. "Say message
come to Kshshti. I get same here."
"Who sent you here?"
"Mahen agent, a? Got here, there agent, same hani, same kif. I not say more,
Pyanfar. See? I one time try tell truth, got big trouble."
Ayhar? she wondered. Gods, no. Not Banny, not that lot. They loved their
liberties too well.
Methane-breather? T'T'Tmmmi had come in from Meetpoint. She had seen it on the
list. It was still in port.
Tt'om'm'mu's spy, reporting to methane-side of Kshshti? Circles upon circles. It
sent a cold, cold feeling to the stomach.
Knnn. But no one talked to knnn. No one could -- excepting tc'a.
"You come," Jik said, mistaking overload for acquiescence, taking her by the
unresisting arm, flinging his over her shoulders. "Get you safe back ship,
Pyanfar. Got time maybe catch sleep. Tell you truth . . . I come Kura way, lousy
long run. Sleep make you better, a?" He squeezed hard, dropped the arm again as
they came out into the general offices and walked through. Mahen crew hastened
to open the outside door. Station guards stood with rifles beside the waiting
car.
Kura. Kura was in hani territory. And Ehrran had folded fast when she had a look
at the authority in that small wallet Jik had at his belt. Ayhar-Ayhar had been
folded before she got there, ears down.
Scared. Plenty scared.
She got into the car at Jik's side in back, surrounded by mahe whose musky
flavor got past the perfumes. A guard caught her eye, one curly-furred and
smallish, and alarms rang.
"That one," she said to Jik, digging claws into his knee, "outside--"
"Name her Tginiso," Jik said, ducking his head to look past her out that window.
"Eseteno aide."
"She was with the car when Hilfy went. Her fur's not singed." For a moment the
air seemed very close, the scent of mahendo'sat all-enveloping, and she knew who
she was talking to, hunter-captain, mahe with mahen interests very much at
stake. She felt Jik's arm shift across the seatback.
"Move," he said to the driver in the mahen tongue. The car leapt forward with a
burr of the motor, wheels bumping on the plates like a panicked heartbeat.
Not a word from Jik, only a shifting of his eyes from one side to the other,
watching everything along the sides.
Pyanfar watched him, among the rest. Friend. Companion. Along with Rhif Ehrran.
The car thumped along, dodged pedestrians.
Jik took out his pistol and thoughtfully took the safety off in his lap, no
small piece like her pocket gun, no, nearly as long as his forearm, with a
black, wicked sheen. The mahe on the other side drew hers and kept scanning the
surrounds, the whisk of gantries past, of lines, machinery, canisters, all
places for ambushes.
Berth five passed. Jik spoke to the driver in something mahen and obscure. "We
go close," Jik said. "Want you go fast up ramp."
"Gods rot it, my whole lower deck's occupied."
He pressed her knee. "Same good get you safe in ship." The car veered: a ship
access and guards loomed into the way and the car veered again, bringing the
door even with the access. The door flew up and Pyanfar scrambled out with Jik
and the crewwoman close behind.
Up the ramp then, a slower pace, the long, chill walk through that yellow gullet
with the L bend to the lock. Pyanfar looked back, looked round again as they
reached the lock and Jik laid a hand on her shoulder.
"Safe. Safe here."
"Sure. The stationmaster's handpicked aides--"
"Listen. I know you safe."
"You know. What's in that ID, Jik? Who are you? Who are you working for?"
Both hands settled on her shoulders. There was nowhere to look but dark mahen
eyes, a plain mahen face. "You got watch on you deck, understand, got number one
good watch."
"Who? What are you talking about?"
Jik's lips went tight. "Mahe take orders somewhere else. Same good tech, a? Not
make mistake."
"Like that aide? Safe like that?"
"I fix."
That left cold after it. Jik lifted his hands from her shoulders, held one
finger up.
"Then," Jik said, "get good sleep."
"Ayhar's jumped," Khym said, who sat monitor on com, and the board checks paused
for the moment. He scribbled furiously on the lightpad and his florid scrawl
came up on screen three as Haral punched it through, a string of numbers
meaningless to him, but he got them down with speed.
Heading, velocity, strength of field.
"It's on its way," Tirun muttered, and Pyanfar felt a twinge of relief as the
full scan input went to the number two: no pursuit.
There was a tc'a out. T'T'Tmmmi. Outbound on the same heading, none too quietly.
TC'A TC'A TC'A TC'A TC'A TC'A TC'A
transmission said, with ship-function babble in all its harmonics, a tc'a ship
fully occupied with tc'a business and the speaker thinking only of its/their
jobs. Tc'a did not lie, so the story ran, could not. Once a tc'a began to
output, the underminds had to be there or the harmonics failed and the whole
matrix fell into gibberish.
So someone non-tc'a had reckoned, from what gtst thought tc'a had claimed, a
hundred years ago.
She went back to work, running checks through the systems, resetting failsafes
and running them again and again, putting comp through one and the other
simulation as it re-programmed itself.
"Pride." Khym's low voice, answering some call, in the profound silence, the
click of keys, the sometime shift of a body in a leather seat. "First is busy.
Can you--" The shift of a heavier body. "Ker Tirun. It's Vigilance. They want a
crew member."
Tirun muttered something and took it. "Gods rot," she said. "You don't need to
go up the line for that, Ehrran . . . . That was a crew member."
Pyanfar turned around.
"Fine," Tirun said, and punched the contact out. "That's a confirm on the Ayhar
jump."
Pyanfar said nothing. There was nothing to say. Tell Khym to stand his ground
and ignore a request for higher authority? But next time it might be something
that truly had to get someone more knowledgeable. Log the discourtesy? Who would
read it but the han?
Khym was busy already, a look of concentration on his broad, scarred face the
while he listened to station chatter that flowed past him like so much babble,
sorting for anything of interest, anything of tc'a or knnn, anything of kif or
mahendo'sat. Doing the best he could.
In Hilfy's vacant post.
Pyanfar turned back again, twisted in her seat a third time as she heard the
lift work down the corridor.
"Captain!" Tirun spun her chair as she did, as she came out of her chair
reaching for her pocket and Khym was out of his place.
"Identify." Haral had usurped com function to her panel and keys clicked to
freeze locks, but the lift door opened all the same.
Hani. Hani and smallish and one of their own.
"Geran," Pyanfar muttered, and the gun went back. No rejoicing, not from any of
them. It was not that kind of time, an hour to go and Geran out of place.
"Something wrong?" Pyanfar asked as Geran walked onto the bridge. "Chur all
right, Geran?"
"Left her below, snugged in."
"Gods and thunders!"
Geran shrugged, padded over to main scan, rested a hand on her seatback and
looked round again, ears at half, and obduracy in the stare she gave back.
"Don't like to cross those docks, captain. Scary place out there."
It took a good long moment of even breathing to cope with that.
"Geran--" in a tone quiet enough to warn a chi. "We've got one hour, one
gods-rotted hour to get things sorted out. You two--"
"Captain, please." Geran's voice sank to the same level, but all wobbly. "Chur'd
kill me for saying it, but she's scared. Gut-scared. Being left here -- the ship
and all -- where'd she be? What good's two of us -- here? By ourselves? Where's
home, but The Pride?"
Something superstitious settled into her own gut, nothing reasonable. "Look.
We're not after suicide, hear me? Jik's in port. He's got Vigilance on our side
for what she's worth. We're going to Mkks to do some good. Hear me? Now get Chur
back where she belongs."
"She is. Same as me." Geran's claws sank into the chairback, tendons stark on
the backs of her hands. "What's all this new stuff worth with half a crew, huh?
Chur can walk -- walked across that dock out there from the lift, she did, just
fine."
"Good gods."
"The plasm took; the wound won't tear. Got her packed in real good and the
time-stretch'11 give her a good few days to heal. Might be on her feet by the
time we get to Mkks--"
"The gravity-drop'll kill her."
"No. Not Chur."
She folded her ears down and Geran stood her ground, meant to stand it, gods
knew. And they needed that pair of hands. Needed hands that could fit
hani-specific controls, fit a hani crewwoman's space. "Gods rot,",she muttered
and walked off the other way with a wave of her hand. "Bring her topside. Put
her in my cabin. Put her close to us. Pack a med kit in there."
"My cabin," Khym said. "She can have mine."
"Do it."
"Thanks," Geran said, all heartfelt. "Thanks, captain."
"And get yourself back here. We've got a tight schedule, huh?"
"Aye!" Geran scrambled and took Khym with her.
Pyanfar looked at Tirun and Haral. Tirun's face carefully showed nothing;
Haral's was toward the boards, occupied with business.
"Odds just went up," Tirun said, "captain."
"We need crazy people on our side?" She threw herself into the chair, powered it
about again, feeling a shameful comfort to know one more seat was filled. The
lift hummed, Khym and Geran going down to see to the transfer.
"Getting a confirmation from Aid /in," Haral said, who still had com. "Getting a
readoff on course, They're putting us out gods-rotted deep in the well."
She looked at the figures that flashed onto monitor one. "Huh." She keyed that
data set into the simulator and watched the lines tick across the screen,
affirmative, affirmative, can-do. It was still The Pride's boards, but something
alien answered from aft, up the circuit-synapses through the metal spine. "Huh."
It made her nervous, in a way that camera-view did not, that picked up the wider
vanes, the rakish lines of the vane-columns. That was plain to inspection. The
heart and core of it was not, that added some twenty percent to their unladed
mass and threw varied percentages into the figures of moving that mass. Old
familiar reckonings went by the board. They had to lean on comp entirely, trust
it without the dead-reckoning knowledge what the answers ought to be, when it
told them The Pride could make a jump that she could never in a mahen hell have
survived half a week before.
"We go with it," she said.
Continued in
THE KIF STRIKE BACK
Appendix Species of the Compact
The Compact
The Compact is a loose affiliation of all trading species of a small region of
stars who have agreed by treaty to observe certain borders, trade restrictions,
tariffs, and navigational procedures. It is an association, not a government,
has no officials and maintains no offices, except insofar as all officials of
the various governments are de facto officers of the Compact.
The hani
Native to Anuurn, hani may be among the smaller species of the Compact, but the
size range, particularly among males, is so extreme that individual hani may
overreach and outbulk the average of other, taller species. Their fur is short
over most of their bodies except for manes and beards. It ranges in color from
red gold to dull red brown with blackish edges, and in texture from crimped
waves to curls to coarse straightness.
Hani were a feudal culture divided into provinces and districts a few centuries
previous to the events of The Pride of Chanur. They had well-developed trade and
commerce when they were contacted by the spacefaring mahendo'sat (qv) and flung
from their middle ages, with its flat-earth concept and territoriality, into
interstellar trade.
The way of life previous to that age had been this: that individual males carved
out a territory by challenge and maintained it with the aid of their sisters,
currently resident wives, and female relatives of all sorts, so long as the male
in question remained strong enough to fend off other challengers. Actual running
of the territory rested with a lord's sisters and other female relatives, at
least a few of whom, if he was fortunate, would prove skillful traders, and
whose marriages with outclan males would form profitable links with the females
of other clans. Such males as lived to become clan lords were sheltered and
pampered, kept in fighting trim at the urging of their female relatives, and
generally took no part whatsoever in interclan dealings or in mercantile
decisions, which were considered too exacting and stressful for males to cope
with. The male image in most households was that of a cheerful, unworldly fellow
mostly involved in games and hunts, and existing primarily for the siring of
children and, in time of challenge, idolized for those natural gifts of
irrational temper and berserker rage which would greet the sight of another
male. The females stood between him and all other vicissitudes of life. Much of
hani legendry and literature, of which they are fond, involves the tragic
brevity of males; or the cleverness of females; or the treks and voyages of
ambitious females out to carve out territory for some unlanded brother to
defend.
Under the management of certain great females, vast estates grew up. Certain
estates contained crucial trade routes, shrines, mountain passes, dams -- things
which were generally the focus of ambition. Certain clans formed amphictionies,
associations of mutual interest to assure the access of all members to areas of
regional importance, which was usually done by declaring the area in question
protected. Out of such protected zones grew the concept of the Immune Clan; that
is, a clan whose hold over a particular resource must not change, because of the
need of the surrounding clans to have that resource managed over the long term
by a clan with experience and peculiar skill: such clans devoted themselves to
public service and dressed distinctively. Immune males enjoyed great ceremonial
prestige and were generally cloistered and pampered, while the sons of Immune
houses were without hope of succession except by the death of the lord by
natural causes. To attack an Immune male was a capital offense, bringing all the
area clans to enforce the law.
This form of regional government proved successful in bringing Enafy province,
where the Llun Immune had its seat, to preeminence in the great plains of the
Llunuurn River. Enafy province spread its influence through trade into other
regions and other amphictionies sprang up, some less benevolent. The concept of
amphictiony spread to other continents and races and, while other cultures
survived, generally they were small, or so divided that they managed little
growth: the Enafy and Enaury of Anuurn's largest continent spread their culture
by trade and occasionally by intrigue and by marriage and alliance.
Into this situation came the mahendo'sat, who chose for their landing site the
Llunuurn basin, as the most extensive river system on the planet and the area
with the most developed roads and habitations. Because of this selection,
initial contact happened to be with the largest and oldest amphictiony, in the
lordship of na Ijono Llun.
Na Ijono's sister ker Gifhon Llun went out to meet the intruders, since they
were neither hani nor (as Gifhon assumed incorrectly in several cases) male. By
the time she understood what she was dealing with, dealing had begun, trade had
been offered, and the world, without Gifhon's clearly realizing it for some
years, had forever changed.
Other amphictionies felt threatened by this relationship of Enafy province to
the mahendo'sat and the elevation of the Llun clan from supervisors of the dams
of the lower Llunuurn tributaries, to supervisors of a starfaring shuttle-port
and station. The mahendo'sat played one against the other and snared all the
hani leaders into trade.
The hani amphictionies, however, whether or not it accorded with mahen
intentions (and perhaps it was the intent of the mahendo'sat from the start)
began to deal with each other in the concept of a much larger amphictiony, one
with Anuurn itself as the Resource which had to be protected.
So the hem was created, the council of councils, the heart and center of hani
government, microcosm of the world in which alliance, province, clan and
Immunity still played their role -- as, indeed, han has another meaning as a
collective meaning All Hani. Theoretically every hani lord was ceremonially part
of the body: some actually attended and addressed the assembly. The seats, one
to each clan, belonged to the female heads of household, or, in practice, to any
senior female in the vicinity of the several meeting halls, one of which existed
and exists in every province. The han is thus composite, and only infrequently
holds a true general meeting, the location of which is subject to intense
negotiation.
Hani relations with other starfaring folk were not generally positive. The stsho
(qv) were not in accord with the mahendo'sat intervention on Anuurn: their
motives might be judged to be several -- unwillingness to see the mahen sphere
of influence increase; the fact that they and the hani shared a territorial
border; their distrust of all virtually exclusive carnivores based on their
experience with the kif (qv); their fears of instability in the Compact; or
other reasons which like minds might comprehend. The kif understood the arrival
of the hani on the scene as opportunity, in the exercise of which they were
driven back by mahendo'sat and hani combined. The opinion of the compact's other
species was never solicited nor received.
Hani territory included originally Anuurn system. The name of their home star is
Ahr. The planets of Ahr system are, in order: Gohin, a hot and barren world
without atmosphere; Anuurn itself; Tyo, a cold, barren world partially
terraformed for a hani colony; the gas giants Tyar and Tyri; and frozen Anfas.
Gaohn station was built by mahendo'sat in orbit about Anuurn and turned over to
Llun, whose males were the only hani males ever to leave the surface. Kilan
station was built in orbit about Tyo, never particularly prosperous; and Harn
station was built as a shipyard facility.
The Chanur Family
A very old clan of Enafy province, occasionally obscure but more often involved
in the amphictiony of Enafy under a series of ambitious leaders, Chanur sprang
into considerable prominence as one of the first clans to see the benefits of
offworld trade.
Kohan Chanur is current lord: his principle mates are Huran Faha, Akify Llun,
Lilun Sifas. Actual manager of the estate is his aunt Jofan Chanur par Araun.
His sisters are Pyanfar, Rhean and Anfy Chanur, whose mates are of clan Mahn,
Anury, and Quna respectively, and who captain the ships The Pride of Chanur,
Chanur's Fortune and Chanur's Light. His daughters are: Hilfy, by Huran; Nifas,
by Akify, among others; and two sons (exiled).
Araun is a tributary clan, rated as cousins to Chanur; other cousin clans are
Tanan, Khuf, and Pyruun. Jisan Araun par Chanur was mother to Haral and Tirun
through an obscure tributary clan lord from remote Llunuurny, long since
defeated and replaced by a male Haral and Tirun declined to support, leaving him
to his numerous if unambitious sisters. Nifany Pyruun, Jofan Chanur's blood
cousin, is birth-mother to Chur and Geran and a son in exile. She is
administrator of Chanur offices in the port authority. Kohan's most recent
defense of Chanur was against Kara Mahn, son of Pyanfar Chanur and Khym Mahn.
Mahn, a nonspacing clan in the Kahin Hills nearby, remains an uneasy neighbor
with Kara in Khym's stead, and his full sister Tahy at the head of Mahn's
financial interests.
Hani language and religion
There was not, of course, one language, but the Enafy dialect of the Llunuurn
valley became standardized as the language of commerce and diplomacy. With
considerable resistance it was adopted as the language of the han and is the
only language heard offplanet.
The language was the vehicle of the spread of Llunuurn culture planetwide and
carries it into space.
Terms of respect are: ker, title of a high clan woman; na, title of a clan lord;
par maternal daughter of a clan. Nef is the title of an ex-lord, who is no
longer entitled to be called by the name of his clan.
Hani terms of disrespect involve uncleanness; age (eggsucker implies one too old
to hunt moving game); disavowal by clan (bastard is an inaccurate translation,
since legitimacy cannot be at issue in a matrilineal descent); the deities; the
condition of the ears, which tell a great deal about one's efficiency in
self-defense. More peculiar is the use of feathered, an impious reference to a
hani religious debate; and son, as in gods give you sons; since male offspring
do no work and are exiled at puberty to return and attempt to take over the
estate in their prime, a house with many sons is in constant turmoil.
The Mahendo'sat
Among the tallest species of the Compact, tending to ranginess and length of
limb, the mahen-do'sat have fur ranging from sleek sheened black to curly brown,
with all gradations in between. Their claws do not retract, and are more a tool
of utility than a weapon. They are omnivores, native to Iji, from which they
control a considerable territory. Their neighbors on the one side are the hani,
on the other the kif, with whom they share some territory in dispute.
The mahendo'sat have more than a hundred languages native to Iji. Their own
lingua franca is chiso, which not all mahendo'sat speak; and very many
mahendo'sat have never succeeded in learning even the simplified pidgin that
they popularized during the hani contact. Ironically, this species which pursues
both art and science for its own sake and which is continually engaged in
research of all kinds, cannot translate either into or out of its own set of
languages with any degree of accuracy, which some might suspect indicates more
than apparent idiosyncrasies in psychology as well as physiology. The fact that
the pidgin is mostly hani rests on several facts, most of them having to do with
the mahendo'sat's inability to translate their own tongue. First, mahendo'sat
and stsho were already in communication with great difficulty through a bastard
tongue involving kif, who spoke stsho. Second, when hani came into the picture,
hani proved able to learn kifish and stsho and with their long experience as
traders, evolved a pidgin hani that blended with the current pidgin and
virtually supplanted it. This proved something even mahendo'sat could handle,
and which kif had less trouble with than they did with stsho. So the mahendo'sat
took to it with relief.
As for the inner workings of the mahen culture, even the species name exists in
some uncertainty. Mahe is generally singular, sometimes plural; and mahendo'sat
actually seems to stand for the species collective mentality, or the species as
an entity, or for some concept which refuses translation as nation or species.
The term han in its application as the collective of the hani species is clearly
a reflection of mahen influence in the formative phase of hani world government.
Mahendo'sat are often collectors, which they have in common with stsho; but
mahendo'sat are most interested in natural objects and make elaborate gardens,
an art which they taught to the hani, whose gardens nevertheless maintain a
hani-like plainness and agricultural practicality. Mahendo'sat on the other hand
are devoted to design and derive philosophical meaning from the growth patterns
of their carefully tended trees. Mahendo'sat also keep pets, a trait they share
with stsho and perhaps tc'a (qv) but mahendo'sat are likely to keep difficult
ones and to lavish care on exotics. The history of the mahen species is one of
pocket kingdoms, continual religious ferment, mysticism, leaders with
self-claimed credentials rising to some purpose and vanishing in what may have
been a tradition of such vanishments. They are greatly concerned with abstracts
and courtesies, symbol and hidden meaning.
Modern and ancient mahen authority rests on Person, involving dignity and
charismatic appeal, and interlinking Personages in an elaborate chain of command
in which one appoints the next, but in which a higher Personage may be brought
down by the malfeasance or error of an appointee. Mahendo'sat set great store by
this indefinable quality and esteem it where found, to such an extent that they
likewise choose to honor or ignore members of other species with complete
disregard of those species' own concepts of authority. Personages are of either
of the species' two genders, usually of mature years. Personages come in many
ranks and levels of authority, but all are attended by a Voice, a person usually
of the opposite gender whose apparently self-appointed task it is to represent
the Personage and to utter unpleasantness which the Personage is too serene to
deal with.
The mahen social unit is complex, revolving around personage: mating is at
apparent random, but Person has a great deal to do with it. Young are traded
about with apparent abandon, but this also has to do with the bonds of Person,
and the desire to expose the young to good influence or superior instruction.
The mahen government currently rests with a Personage at Iji whose serenity is
untroubled; but in the fashion of mahendo'sat, this and the entire form of
government are subject to change without notice.
The Stsho
The stsho, native to remote Llyene, are a pale, hairless species, trisexual
hermaphrodites, one of each triad bearing young: but that same individual may
exist within another triad as a non-bearer. Stsho refuse to explain.
They are omnivores of great sensitivity and fragility. Their limbs break easily.
Their very personalities fragment under stress, which seems to serve as a social
absolution. It is very impolite to recognize a stsho who has changed persona, or
as stsho call it . . . Phased. An individual seems to go through many Phases in
life.
They trade. They are aesthetes and enjoy subtle distinctions in taste and sight.
They have forty-seven different words, for instance, for white.
Like hani, they prefer bowl-structures for chairs and beds. Their elaborate
architecture is apparently random and universally pastel in color.
They are the only natives of Compact space who need drugs to survive jump.
They permit no intrusion of oxygen-breathing species within their territory, but
they are utterly incapable of enforcing this except through their relationship
with the unpredictable methane-breathers who divide them from kif territory.
They share one border with the hani; methane-breathers come and go within their
space; and to their considerable distress they have discovered humans are at
their backs, on the side of stsho space nearest Llyene, which is a mysterious
and forbidden world.
They were among the first spacefarers in the region, anomalous, because their
primary policy seems to be to acquire the widest possible area about their
homeworld from which strangers are excluded. Certainly they did not seem to go
to the stars to make contact with outsiders. Or perhaps some experience lies in
their past which has made them what they are. Stsho allow no real information
about stsho to leak out of their space, which greatly vexes the curious
mahendo'sat.
Legendarily Llyene is a treasure world of fantastical wealth. It is certain that
stsho trade is lucrative in all directions, and that they are the source of a
great deal of technology that the mahendo'sat turn to various purposes.
The Kif
Kif are tallest of the species of the Compact, very lean and having virtually no
body fat. They are mostly hairless, except for a close-growing strip down the
midline of their elongate, long-snouted skulls -- which is seldom visible, as
kif go robed and hooded and seldom bare their heads. The skin is gray and soft,
if very tough and much wrinkled, and hot to the touch of hani or mahendo'sat.
They are agile and strong; their claws are retractable and very sharp. Their
eyes are usually red-rimmed: they prefer very dim light. What their genders are
is a matter of guesswork. They may have two, but outsiders often use it of a kif
in complete uncertainty, and he by convention which the mahendo'sat began: kif
use he and occasionally she of themselves, but whether this precisely reflects a
mahen/hani style gender distinction or something more like the stsho is still
uncertain. Kif give few clues to aid the guesswork.
Kif got into space independently, through an arms race, and acquired starflight
through contact with tc'a, whose wisdom in this other species question.
Kif are totally carnivorous, incapable of swallowing anything very large. Two
independent sets of jaws exist within the snout, one to bite, another to reduce
the intake to pulp and fluids. They prefer live food, and actually have rather
delicate appetites: they are repulsed by carrion and could not easily handle
cooked meat.
Color does not play a part in their decor, which is generally utilitarian and
often black and gray. The light in their dwellings is quite dim. They have keen
night vision, and indeed much of their homeworld dwelling is underground, though
some mahen scientists have disputed on the basis of the kifish eye (smaller than
the eyes of other nocturnals on other worlds) whether the species did not in
fact originate as a diurnal hunter and change its lifestyle in the remote past.
As kif do not share data with mahendo'sat, and stsho and hani have no interest
in the question, it goes unanswered. Curiously kif do practice art, which seems
confined to objects of ordinary use, weapons, cups, boxes and containers, which
are embellished in tactile patterns. They place little value on mass-produced
goods and great value on objects they believe to be unique, or on consumables
such as rare and endangered species or uncommon liquors. They do appreciate
intoxicants of various kinds but are the most moderate of known species in their
consumption: individual kif who have become intoxicated have been killed
outright by their companions.
Kif are facile linguists, great mimics, and in particular speak fluent hani, as
well as their own several languages. Their homestar is Akkt, their homeworld
Akkht, which outsiders often confuse, and reputedly both mean home or homebase,
since home as understood by kif has the connotation of a place to which one
repairs to gather one's forces for the next season. When they discovered
outsiders, the shock and subsequent period of organization enabled a few leaders
to seize power on Akkht, and eventually let the space-faring kif seize power
over Akkht entirely.
Kif have historically had little organization, usually engaged with each other
in disputes and continual snatching of property from weaker kif. They have the
concept of sfik, or face, in which the stronger will hold to a thing and defy
all comers. The more attractive and unique the prize, the greater the sfik.
Their interest in art perhaps revolves around this; of particular sfik-value are
consumables or perishables which may be destroyed or used at any moment and for
calculated purpose to frustrate the enemy. Taking such a thing is difficult and
of great value, and there are also legendary destructions of great and valued
objects.
Along with sfik there is also pukkukkta, which has no true translation except as
a devastating blow to a rival.
Usually the kif operate as individuals or as crews, in which one kif is supreme,
and weaker kif, if not protected from this one, are at least protected from
other kif.
Sometimes a kif rises to a position of supremacy in which others fear to
challenge him and in which he gathers great fear and support from those about
him. Such a kif is a hakkikt, which kif say means prince. A hakkikt's existence
usually means a period in which outsiders will have trouble with kif. There is a
growing expectation among kif that a hakkikt will arise to unite all kifish
worlds into a power the rest of the Compact cannot withstand.
Tc'a
Tc'a are serpentine beings, leathery gold, methane breathers, native to
Oh'a'o'o'o. They have a multipartite brain that thinks in matrices and
communicates in harmonics. The mouthparts are toolusing. They can bulk a dozen
times the weight of a mahendo'sat and bear several young at once, without
apparent attention to the process, which has happened in the middle of
conversations. They do trade, and mine, and what they think remains tc'a
business. They usually run the methane side of stations in the Compact, since so
far as anyone knows they are the only methane breathers interested in doing so.
They are associated with chi and knnn (qqv), and while a great deal is known
about tc'a comings and goings and while they take no aggressive action against
any species, virtually nothing is known about the tc'a mind or the history of
the species, except that they were in contact with the chi before they met the
stsho, and were extremely early spacefarers.
Chi
Chi are neon yellow sticklike beings who (which?) move with great rapidity and
often seem to be in total panic. "Crazy as a chi" is a hani proverb widely
understood.
It is uncertain whether chi are associates of the tc'a or pets. Chi can run
ships but are erratic navigators and it is virtually certain they did not invent
their own technology. Tc'a are not found without chi, though occasionally chi
may nest in communities into which tc'a do not appear to go.
Natives of Chchchoh, chi regularly accompany tc'a into the most hazardous mining
areas. No oxygen-breather has ever reported visiting Chchchoh. Tc'a will not
permit it, for what reason is unclear. It is known that chi reproduce by growing
a second brain at some point midway along their bodies. Additional leg segments
follow; then fission, and the newborn chi races off independently. Gender with a
chi is therefore of questionable application. Activities have been observed
which may be mating, but this is uncertain.
Knnn
No one knows the name of the knnn homeworld. No one knows if their ships have
names-except perhaps the tc'a or the chi, who do not say. No oxy-breather is
even sure which star they come from, except that it is on the underbelly of the
Compact, and suspicion centers around one star known to be a hub of knnn
activity.
Knnn look like black nests of hair-snarl with spider legs. Packrats of the
galaxy, they breathe methane and sing long involved songs over ships' radio.
They are (perhaps) miners and (one supposes) traders, but their idea of trade
(as best the tc'a could communicate with them) is to dash onto station or ship,
and exchange what they've brought for what they want or what they take a fancy
to. In the bad old days, knnn simply gutted ships. They go in swarms or
solitary, and their ships are the only ships known to change vector in
jumpspace. They have a jump boost and turn maneuver that is impossible for
oxy-breathers. They are not popular. One can only talk to them through the tc'a,
who can get a kind of general translation-if you can understand the tc'a's
seven-part matrix-sentences.
Knnn ships observe no lane regulations or instructions, and no one is about to
challenge them on the point. It is suspected in some quarters that the knnn may
have been the origin of much of the technology of the Compact. No one except the
stsho knows whether the stsho actually devised their own technology, and perhaps
stsho in general do not know: certainly they do not comment on it.
Knnn were unknown at Anuurn until Pyanfar Chanur brought them there. Her people
are not grateful.
------------------------
End - Chanur's Venture
(c)1984 by C.J. Cherryh